Pradarśini (1905) VOLUME IV. APPENDIX A and B

Size: px
Start display at page:

Download "Pradarśini (1905) VOLUME IV. APPENDIX A and B"

Transcription

1 Saṅgīta Saṁpradāya Pradarśini Brahmaśrī SUBBARĀMA DĪKṢITAR (1905) VOLUME IV APPENDIX A and B ENGLISH EDITION JANUARY 2008 Å «

2 SAṄGĪTA SAṀPRADĀYA PRADARŚINI SUBBARĀMA DĪKṢITA ENGLISH (WEB) VERSION Volume IV: APPENDIX A and B TO NAVIGATE CLICK ON THE BOOKMARKS PANEL ON LEFT, or CLICK HERE TO GO TO TABLE OF CONTENTS. (TO VIEW IN FULL SCREEN MODE (SUPPRESSING THE LEFT PANEL), CLICK ON THE Bookmarks BUTTON ON THE LEFT PANEL (IT TOGGLES). This document is for educational and personal use only. No part of this PDF file may be used commercially, or sold, or bundled ith any other commercial product. Any comments or suggestions for change may be ed to sami at mun dot ca or vidyajay at gmail dot com c January 2008 The magnum opus, Saṅgīta Saṁpradāya Pradarśini of Subbarāma Dīkṣita has celebrated 100 years of its publication. To commemorate the event, this is our humble attempt to provide an English (electronic) eb-version of the ork, for the benefit of students and Rasikas of music. (Typeset using L A TEX 2ε, AMSL A TEX, pdfl A TEX, and hyperref)

3 ī g u r u g u h ā y a r ś n a m a ḣ

4 Subbarāma Dīkṣita (1839 A.D 1906 A.D)

5 A. M. Cinnasva mi Mudaliya r

6 Contents A rāgamālikas 1244 A.1 rāgamālikā śrī viśvanātham Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita A.2 rāgamālikā pūrṇacandrabiṁbavadanē Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita A.3 rāgamālikā śivamōhanaśaktī Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita A.4 rāgamālikā manasā vēritaruladalacaka Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita A.5 rāgamālikā enduku rā rā Subbarāma Dīkṣita A.6 rāgamālikā nī sarilērani Subbarāma Dīkṣita A.7 rāgamālikā gāravamuganna Subbarāma Dīkṣita A.8 rāgamālikā kāmiñcana kalāvati Subbarāma Dīkṣita A.9 rāgamālikā valapumīri Subbarāma Dīkṣita A.10 rāgamālikā manatōṭiṇaṅkina Subbarāma Dīkṣita A.11 rāgamālikā vanitarōyēmisētu Subbarāma Dīkṣita A.12 rāgatāḷamalika nāṭakādi vidyala Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita A.13 rāgamālikā vēḍukatō Subbarāma Dīkṣita A.14 rāgamālikā priyamuna Subbarāma Dīkṣita A.15 rāgāṅga rāgamālikā ī kanakāṁbari Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita A.16 rāgamālikā sāmajagamana Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita B compositions of various composers 1423 B.1 daru sārasanayanasarasā Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita B.2 kīrtana gurumūrtē Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita B.3 kīrtana gaṇanāyakam bhajēham Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita B.4 kīrtana tyāgēśam bhaja rē Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita B.5 kīrtana gaṇēśa kumāra Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita B.6 kīrtana anantabālakṙṣṇam Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita B.7 kīrtana śrī vallīpatē Subbarāma Dīkṣita B.8 cauka varṇam virakamu vaśamallaṭi Muttukkumārappulavar B.9 padam entukuyīmāṭala Vēṅkaṭēśvara Eṭṭappa Mahārājā B.10 padam iṁdeṁdu vaccitirā Subbarāma Dīkṣita B.11 tāna varṇam kanakāṅgī Pallavi Gōpālayyar B.12 kīrtana aṁbanādu Pallavi Gōpālayyar B.13 kīrtana harisarvaparipūrṇa Pallavi Gōp layyar B.14 kīrtana mahiṣāsuramarddani Pallavi Gōp layyar B.15 kīrtana nīkē dayatō Kuppusāmayyā B.16 kīrtana ekkaḍiki poyyavēlala Kuppusāmayyā B.17 kīrtana śrī vēṅkaṭēśvaruni Kuppusāmi Ayyā B.18 kīrtana rādānāmī dadaya Kuppusāmi Ayyā B.19 kīrtana nī arisāṭi Kuppusāmayyā B.20 kīrtana iṅgā dayarādā Śrīnivāsayyā B.21 kīrtana ninnumiñcina vārevarammā Śrīnivāsayyā B.22 kīrtana dhūrjaṭi neṭiṁcene Dorasāmayyā B.23 kīrtana tattadhimita diddhiyanisa Dorasāmayyā i

7 CONTENTS ii B.24 svarajati rāvē himagirikumāri Śyāmā Śāstri B.25 kīrtana tarali boyyē samayamu Mātṙbhūtayyā B.26 kīrtana umā himācalakumāri mātṙbhūtayyā B.27 kīrtana kannatalli ninnu Meraṭṭūr Vēṅkaṭarāma Śāstri B.28 kīrtana kanukoni pāpavimuktula Mātṙbhūtayyā B.29 kīrtana śaṁbhō puramadaśamanavibhō Mātṙbhūtayyā B.30 kīrtana śrēyasē dhyāyāmi rāmam Vaikuṇṭha Śāstri B.31 kīrtana sēviñci danyula mayyē Ghanam Sīnayyā B.32 kīrtana nā morāliṁpavē Tāḷapākam Cinnayyā B.33 kīrtana māyā nī vañcana naḍuvadu Girirāja Kavi B.34 kīrtana tyāgādhipa dayānidhē Svayṁprakāśa Yatīndra B.35 kīrtana tāvaka karakamalē Akkuḷ Svāmi B.36 taraṅgam jaya jaya gōkulabālā Nārāyaṇatīrtha Yatīndra B.37 cauka varṇam ī virahameṭula Pūrvīkās B.38 cauka varṇam aluganēlarānā Prācīnās B.39 cauka varṇam śrī kamalāṁbā Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita B.40 cauka varṇam cāla namminacāna Pañcāpakēśa Bhāgavatar B.41 kīrtana jagadānandakārakā Tyāgarājasvāmi B.42 kīrtana duḍukugala nannē Tyāgarājasvāmi B.43 kīrtana endarō mahānubhāvulu Tyāgarājasvāmi B.44 kīrtana sādhiṁcenē ō manasā Tyāgarājasvāmi B.45 tāna varṇam sāmi vanajākṣā Tiruvoṭṭiyūr Vīna Kuppayyar B.46 tāna varṇam ā maguva ninnē kōri Tiruvoṭṭiyūr Vīna Kuppayyar B.47 tāna varṇam nī sarimannedora Gōvindasāmayyā B.48 tāna varṇam intaluka jēsi Kūvaṇasāmi Ayyā B.49 tāna varṇam nīvē dikkani Tirunelvēli Veṅgu Bhāvatar B.50 tāna varṇam sāmi ni rammanavē Śyāmā Sāstri B.51 tāna varṇam sarasijamukhi Tiruvoṭṭiyūr Vīna Kuppayyar B.52 tāna varṇam inta calamu Tiruvoṭṭiyūr Vīna Kuppayyar B.53 tāna varṇam inta priyamugā Tiruvārūr Ayyāsāmi Naṭṭuvanār B.54 padam vadarakapō Kṣētrayya B.55 padam toṁdaraviḍamutōnu Kṣētrayya

8 APPENDIX 1243

9 rāgamālikas rāgamālikā śrī viśvanātham ādi tāḷa Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita (please see next page in landscape mode) 1244

10 A.1 rāgamālikā ādi tāḷa Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi R r g r s / r s [ṇ ṡ śrī vi śva nā N \p p.. thaṁ bha / s Ṇ S ṇ s jē ham R r g r s śrī vi śva p bha / s N S jē ham svara sāhityam ṇ S r m p n ṡ / R ṡ n \P n Ṡ caturdaśabhuvana rū pa rā gamā ṙ Ṡ s n p d n li kā bha ra ṇa dha ra P M r g r s ṇāṁ taḣ ka ra ṇa m r m \ g r s r S \ n ḍ ḍ / r śri ta ja na saṁ ṁ sā r P / d m ra bhī tyā : : m \ g r s R pa ham svara sāhityam P M \ g R s D P m \ g r ā dyātmikā ditāpatraya ma / m m P / d m nō o bhī tyā m\ g r s R pa ham 1245

11 R r g r s śrī vi śva anupallavi / R g R s r śrī vi śā lā svara sāhityam M p ṡ n n Ṡ s r /gr s r / saka la niṣkaḷa rūpa sa ccidā na d 4. N m P m R ci tra viś va nā svara sāhityam p m nn \P ṡ n / R ṡ n p /R r jagatprakāśaka bhāskara śaśāṁka 5. s / r/ g/ m r r s n s r m p/ N Ṗ gō vi ṁ dā di vinuta gau ḷāṁgam svara sāhityam r s ṇ s r s kṣī gau p m g r s rs ṁdamaya gau s Ṇ ṇ ṭa ka pra S n P m r ṇ kō ṭi kō ṭi i pra s r /p p m p rī śam s r/ p p mp rī śam s r g M kā śam s r / g M kā śam 1246

12 P n P Ṡ n kṣī ra kuṁ dēṁ du r g ṁ ṙ Ṡ Ṡ np m p N S jayabhasitō ddhūḷita gau ḷ.mgam 6. d / ṙ ṡ / ṙ d ṡ \ p d gu ru guha saṁ mmō svara sāhityam 6. P G d d P d ṙ Ṡ / Ġ \R paṁcīkṙta paṁcamahā bhū ta ( d P d G p G p R s g. S viriṁci viṣṇu ru dra mūrtima yam ṡ \ P /D g p d pra paṁ cā di mō ) 5. ( r g m R s n s viṣayapaṁcakara 4. ( m r s / n p m g m p n p s N ni ra ti śa ya su kha da ni pu ṇa ta ram ) ( N ṙ / ġ ṙ Ṡ n nigamasāra mī P N Ṡ ṙ ṡ ka rpū rā di vi s s g / d p g r s ha na ka ra li ṁ ga m s s g / d p g r s hanaka ra liṁgam r m p n \ Ṡ hitamabha yam R ṡ ṙ n / r śvara mama ram ) ) 1247

13 ( s \ n d P m \ g r m p d / ṡ S sma ra ha raṁ pa ra ma śi va ma tu lam caraṇam 7. s D r R M sa dā śi vaṁ sā ) svara sāhityam p m dd d Ṡ d P p M pra kṙ tyā di sa pta rū pa sā 8. S ṇ r s ṇ s ḍ \ṃ ḍ / ṇ / s sa nnmā tra ṁ la li svara sāhityam D \M G \R s s ṇ ḍ d / n s kāma krōdhādi rahita la li /g r s sa rasa s n p sadaya p m hṙda ( d P m ma gā na d P m ma gā na r g m / d ta hṙ da ya r g m / d ta hṙ da ya r gr s ṇ p ṇ s. nila ya maniśam g r g R vi nu tam g r g R vi nu tam \ m g \ r s vi di ta m \ m g \ r s vi di ta m R śrī ) 1248

14 9. s D / n p m g m g m p d ci dā kā śa bhai svara sāhityam p m/ d P m m G r s r g mpd vidhikapāla triśūladhara bhai 10. R r /g / M p m p d n ci tsa bhē śva ra ṁ svara sāhityam D p M p m d P ṡ n / Ṙ ṡ n dārukā vanatapō dhana ka lpita 1 s \ Ḍ ṇ /S p m g m p g r g m P sadāśrayā miśa ṁ ka rā bharaṇam svara sāhityam S /r / G m p /d ciṁ ti tā rttha vi ta / n ẇ s \G m ra vaṁ pu /n ẇ s \G m ra vaṁ pu /Ṡ ṙ n d p sā ra ṁ /Ṡ ṙ sā raṁ n d p m / n ṡ ṙ \N / ṡ d p ra ṇa dhu rī ṇa ta ra D n p m g \ r ṡ ra ha ram D n p m g / r s ra ha ram p m r g m r s ga dha ram p m r g mrs ga dha ram 1249

15 M G r d p M g / p / gr g m P māṇikya maya śa ṁ ka rā bharaṇam 1 m g p d/ ṙ ṡ n d sa dgati dā ya kā svara sāhityam D \M P g \ ṙ Ṡ N n d p d / dharmārtthādi nikhila pu ru ṣā rttha d / s np d d Ṡ ṁ bhō ja caraṇam p d ġ Ṙ ṡ n d prada samasta ta rām ṡ n p d d Ṡ bhō ja ca ra ṇam d / 1 s D d P M r S r mp/ D vadānya dēvakriyā khē la nam svara sāhityam Ṡ S d p ṡ d sṙ ṣṭi sthi ti vi la p m d p ṡ d M r P r m p/ D nu graha karaṇa kriyā khē la nam p d P M R ya ti rō dhā nā 1250

16 14 p d p g R s G vai dya li ṁ ga bhū svara sāhityam R g p g dp ṡ D g G r S śrīpura ni rṙti pā gagarttatī 14. D g r g S r d s r G p g \d guruguṇēśa suranarēśa ma ni śam 1 ( m g r s r g s /r s ṇ ḍ p d S. varada mamala raviśaśinaya nam 10. p m p g m r S r / g/ m P /d / N paramaha ṁ sa māna ṁ da nartanam ) ) ) P g / d pg \r s pāla pā lanam D p g r s G ra stiratarabhū 1 ( p m r S r m p kujabudhādigraha g m P m vanajacaṁdra g r saṁ r 1( 9. ( ṡ ṙ\ ġ Ṙ ṡ m g m pati ta pāvanakara P g /dpg r s pāla pā lanam d s d m P gativihitam s ṇ s /r / G nnibha vada nam D d n p M M ṇaṁmmadharaṇam ) ) ) 1251

17 8. ( d \ m g /R s ṇ ḍ \ ṃ Ḍ ṇ s r S pa ra taraṁ parama manōlayajayam ) 7. ( r M m D d S d P m g R parādivā kprakāśa naṁdamayam d P d vi riṁ ci Thus, the six rāga svarams in the anupallavi should be sung in the ārōhaṇa krama, and concluded, taking the pallavi line. ) 1252

18 A.2 rāgamālikā rūpaka tāḷa Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi P pū m r g m rṇa ca ṁ dra R biṁ s S ṇ p. ba vi ja ya ḍ ḍ va da r s r s r nē ka ma m lā ṁ m r g m bi kē : : : : G pu p g ṙ ṡ ṇya ja na pū n p ji D P tē nā p m g \ r rā s r r g s r s ya ṇi ja ga ṇ p. da ṁ ḍ S bi kē anupallavi G pū m d P rṇa pha la m d pra da p m g M ca ra ṇē s / g r sa ra r s Ṇ sva tī p ḍ. ma nō d ḍ R ha rē G pu m p p m ṣpi ta śu d n ddha va / Ṡ n saṁ tē D puṁ d P m ḍa rī ka / d p m sa dṙ g r S n śa ka rē a S g r ha rni śaṁ p p G n P n pra kā śa mā na R Ṡ haṁ sa S n p G r S dhva ni vi rā ji tē P N pa rṇē d n ẇ s r ṡ N Ṙ ku ṁ ḍa li nī nā ġ sṡ n ṡ ṙ Ṡ ga dhva ni sa hi tē 1253

19 ṡ n d n P s n D n P m m dhva ni sa hi tē sa hi tē hi tē tē A.3 rāgamālikā ādi tāḷa Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi s ḍ S r / g \r R śi va mō ha na śa g p g d ktī na nu p / d p g r brō va ve : : : : s r / g r s ḍ S r / g g \ r r g r śi va mō ha na śa g P d Ṡ ktī na nu p d p ṗ g r brō va ve S ṇ p. / ṇ s r śrī ma dhu rā pu ri r r / g R ṇ mī nā S ṇ s g r kṣī a ṁ ba : : : : s r r s Ṇ ṇ p. / Ṇ s r śrī ma dhu rā pu ri r r / g R n mī nā S kṣī S anupallavi p d / n d p mm/ d p m grs ṇ s bhuva nē śva ribhai r g ṃ m ra vi śu ka / d p / d m / p \ g m pā ṇi p / d m / p g d n d n ṡ n p / n d bhu ja ga vē ṇi pa ra p m g m P ma ka g r m g r lyā ṇi p ḍ śi va caraṇam s / r s d / s n/ s S p m g śaṁ ṁ ka rā bha ra ṇa g r g M g r m g g mai s r g m p m g r pe ni mi ṭi : : : : 1254

20 s / r ṇ / s ḍ śaṁ ṁ s / g r s ṇ pe ni mi ṭi S / d d p / d d p m g m g m p sā mē na nu ve la m / d p m g r g r si na śrī s ṇ / r s r gau rī p p/ n\mp mgm p / np/ n d n p m paṁ ka ja pada ba lu m p ṡ n ha ṭhā n ṡ na s n p D / n p m nē mō p m p g m r s r s G pa lu ka vi pu ḍu kaṁ M d d nna ḍa d n d n ṡ n \ D yau nā P p d M g g r s ṇ paṁ ka jā stra mo sa ḍ p \M p.. gi mā ru ṇ s g m vā ḍi mi p d ṡ n d p / d\ m g pd nd d n para ci yu bbilā d p p d d p m g vu ga lu ga r /m g s / p m g p ma ni nci na ẇ n d n ṡ Ṙ n s ṙ ō ṁ kā rī ba hu S \ n d śā ni nu P n d \m naṁ mmi ti r m r m P d P ṡ n ō kṙ pā dbhi pā d p d p m ḍi da la ci p m R s sa ta ta mu s ṇ / r s r r g /m g r p sa ha na mī ra bha p m / n d p \r ktu la pā g m p d p m g g r g r li ṁ ce S R g m m p sā raṁ ga yā d n /Ṡ n d na vu nī p m \R vū g m r m p m g r s / r s ṇ \P. ma hi ma ha ru ni kē s ṇ ṇ s /m dā ra yai g m p p m p n p sa ka ka m p m \r g g m R s r s ṇ s ma ṁ tra nā ya kī ṇ s r s r /p m vai yu ṁ p / n p d / n p nnā vu 1255

21 g S ṇ ḍ p. s ra hi vā ṇi yu nu ra r ṇ M / d p \g mā ma ṇi g m g m p p m p gha ṁ ṭā r m g r g r s r m P ra va mu lo li ya prē d Ṡ d ma sā ma p m g r g r ra sa mu na g r s r s ḍ s s m g vi hi ta mu khā na ya p d d /ṙ s \m mu na cā m p d p p g r ma ra mu lu R m r m p d p m p d /ṙ vī va vi ma la ha ri ṡ p d p ṇa na ya na m g r s ya na ta gu g \ r s g g m va ra va saṁ ta di S D ṡ n d vyō tsa va d \ m G sē vā r g m r s ṇ P. pa ru la gu cu nu ka S p m rṇā ṭa ma R S rā ṭa m g r r g m p p d /nokkur ku ru vu da rbha sau n s D n p p d rā ṣṭra dē n / ṡ D / ṅ p m śa bhū g g m /d va ru lu tō d n ṡ d ḍi n p d m nṙ pa tu la / d P g M kū ḍi m \ G r s r s s ṇ Ḍ r ve ra vu lā ra bhī r / m m p ka ra ga ja d / ṡ d p ra tha ha ya M d d \m g r / g r vī ra bha ṭu lu go lu s d n ḍ \m va ga la li ḍ ṇ s g ta mu gā s r s r / g R s s ṇ s sa ra sa va rā ḷī d / g r g m ja na mu la p d n d p m g r sa ṁ ga ti s m \ g m p d d n /Ṡ śa ra ṇu śa ra ṇu yā n d n d P g ha ri sō g m g r s da ri ya gu 1256

22 4. s \ ṇ s r S n s r pā ri jā ta pu ṁ r m nnā ga va / G G r rā R, s ḷī r/ m g g s ṇ ḍ ḍ p dha ri ta ka ca pra ba la ḍ S r ha ṁ sa m g r m p ga ma na yi / P \r M p p M bhā ri ma dhya mā p n ṡ ṙ va ti su ra Ṡ s N mū rdha / ṡ n d p m g m p / d p m g r s nyā si vē ni nu ṇ s / g g go li ce ta m \ G nu r r / g r s s n n s m bhai ra va mi ka mā m m d d nu mu pa ra d n p p m g r dē vī S ṇ s / g r g M pā rva tī pa ra mā P \m g m naṁ da bhai p m g m g r g r ra vī S r \ n s p /r pū ri nī la yma ṇi R p m. raṁ ga na r \ g r s ta ga da gu s ṇ s g g m p n n ṡ pu vvu bō ṇi ma dhu n d p m g m rē śa ma p m g s nō ha ri 5. P / N /p n /S bṙṁ dā va na sā s n s n p m raṁ ga r / g r s ṇ s r m. na ya na la p d p m m p m g r g r prī ti jū cu rī s ṇ \p / ṇ. ti gau la S / g g m gā cu cu P m r g m r s s ṇ naṁ da mu kha pū p. Ḍ r rṇa caṁ dri s r g m ka la rē P d s d P p m laṁ du kā ma D d p m dē va r s r m kri ya la m 1257

23 P m g r m g g r S jeṁ du cu na ṭa nā S p p rā ya ṇi P ṡ ṡ yaṁ śa nu n ṡ n \ M g s r / g ce la gi mē gha raṁ r s n s r ji ta ka la m g m n da na ru mu n s d p m p g g p p ku ṁ da ha ṁ ṁ vī ru r r s r s ḍa na ta gu G p p ve ṁ ṭa D / ṙ Ṡ P kṙ ṣṇa bhū pā /d d g /d la ka pa ri p \g r s pā li ni s d S r g \r śi va mō ha na In this rāgamālika, each rāgam should be sung tice. The rāgam bilāvu featured in the first caraṇam is just bilahari. 1258

24 A.4 rāgamālikā rūpaka tāḷa Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi p d Ṡ n \ D ma na sā vē /ṙ ṡ n d d ri ta ru la p m p d d p m g \r r da la ca ka : : svara sāhityam s R / g r s ṇ Ḍ s r m p D S pai s ṙ r s / m M \g g m p \m s p / s \n ma ri yā ha ri ca ra n D \ p m g g m p m ṇa ni ma nu g m g \r S mī ī svaram S m \ G r s n s / g / m(caraṇa) S \n \D p d P m (cara) ṇa ni (aha) S \n \D p n S /r r S / M M p m p \ G m p m /n \D p ED: In the chapter on vēggēyakāra caritra, Subbarāma Dīkṣita mentions that this rāgamālikā as composed by Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita. 1259

25 anupallavi (śam) m G r g m P / d P m p d n ṡ ṙ Ṡ n d p d n s n \ D p m G r n p p / s g g m p m g r s r g r s s ṇ s r s ṇ s ṇ ḍ n vi nu mā śa ṁ ṁ ka rā S m bha ra ṇā g \ r g m p p ca la ma na P d p m p vi ḍi ba ḍu kā ma mu p r m P / n d m m \ g r r m khā ri va p n d m m p d p rga mu lu svaram r m p / N d ṡ r ṁ ġ g r ṡ n d d \ṙ ṡ s \ N d d p ṗ / M g r m g r r p ( vi ḍibaḍu)) m p d p mu lu P n d n ṡ p p n d m ye na yu bha kti cē s n n /Ṡ ba hu śā s n d p p d d p m ni tya m svaram p m g r S r g m p n D n s ṙ ṡ \N d p \M g r s r G 1260

26 p d d p p m tyaṁ m S n ṡ s n d bi la ha ri vēṁ ka ṭa m p d ṡ ṙ p m g g p d /ṡ n ra ma ṇu ni d d p d / n d p m g r go lu vu mu svaram d \P m g \r s r g r S n n d s r g p d / ṡ n d d ṙ /ġ ṙ Ṡ n d \P m g \ r r g m p d( vē ṅkaṭa ramaṇuni goluvumu) (bila) G \ R s\ṇ d S r \S r g s r g P m g r g P D ġ ṙ (sāvē) Ṡ n \ D p d /r S n \D p d ṡ \ n d P d d ṅ d \ M G r s r (ma na sā) (āha) (āha) P /n Ḋ Ṗ/ n ẇ S / r r S / m M p M p \ G m p m /n \ D p caraṇam 1261

27 (bēgaḍa) / d p \ M p G m r g m P m D p Ṡ n Ṙ ṡ / ṁ G r ṡ N s D p / N d p M g r s ḍ ḍ p / ṇ ṇ ḍ s a ti mō da ṁ bē s s s g \ r g ga ḍa lu ko G M p m g r s naṁ ga nu s s ṇ p s s M a bjā kṣu mi kē g / M p p m dā ra yai p m g r s r s ra mā svaram S ṇ ṇ S m g m m P ṡ n N ṡ r \Ṡ s n p / n \M g r s / r s s n (abjā kṣ ini) (ramā) g m P d \ m g r r s r G r /ṇ s sa ti ka ru ṇā ni dhi s ṇ s / g g r g ka lyā g m g m p / d m g r ṇi ja ga svaram / p m g r S ṇ ḍ ṇ s r g m p d n ṡ ṙ \S n d p d \P m g d m g r r (sati) m r r ja ga 1262

28 r p d n D / n p d m p \ g jja na ni tō di ve li m P m mi sē yu d p /d d d śā ra da svaram G /orig r s / N d m g m P d n s r \N d d \M g r S r r G g m (ja na ni) d p / d d d śā ra dā d p a ti gau ra va ya gu d p p m p \r s r m p N ṡ / ṙ s gau rī n n ṡ ṡ ra tna mu svaram M p g r S ṇ ṇ S r r m m P ṡ n N ṡ ṙ Ṡ \M / d d P p m p d ( a tigaurava) n n ṡ s ra tna mu s s ṁ m ṙ ṡ ṁ ṡ n ṡ n p / ṡ s la nu nē nā ṭa nu ṙ ṡ s n p m g vi nu tu lō m p p s s n p na rpa mu svaram 1263

29 ṡ s n p m m P m / p m m r s ṇ \P. ḍ ṇ s r g m P d n ṡ / ṙ ṡ n ( la nunē) m p p ṡ s n p na rpu mu P s d / ṙ S d p g g kṣi ti ra ma ṇu ni mō /d d p d ha na śṙ ṁ s d ṡ s gā ru ni svaram D p g r s r g P g / D p d d S d Ṙ ṡ d ṡ p / D p g r s r g p d S d p kṣi ti ra ma s d ṡ ṡ gā ru ni s n s ṙ G g m r g ṙ s bi nne le nni sa ha n n / ṡ d n d p na nu vi ha m g r g r s ri ṁ pu mu svaram n R G m P R p m P \R m m G p r g r S N (sēvē) Ṡ n \D p d /ṙ Ṡ n \D p d / ṡ N G r s r d P d d n d \ M 1264

30 ( ma nasā) 1265

31 m g m e ṁ du In Honour of Rājā Jaga Vīra Muttusvāmi Eṭṭappa Aiyan Avargaḷ A.5 navaratnamālikā rūpaka tāḷam Subbarāma Dīkṣita ṡ ṙ Ṡ n ī s ṇ s ē nu g m i di svara sāhityam \S sā P p ṡ ṡ n n ku rā n / ṡ rā S ṡ n Ṅ n n ṡ n p \m m kō pa mu g m p /n nā m /p \ m g r r s sā mī N \ p S nī kē m G r dā ra r s r r g s rā ā : : p ṡ n p sa ma ya mu p m p na ṁ n \ M g \ r s nē la rā s / ṙ ṡ n p / ṡ n ra sa da ḷa na ya p m / n p na ya ni śa m g / p m g r s r mu nu pa ni va ḍi ma na \S sā ṡ ṙ ġ n a ru ṇa ca s / r s n p / m g ra sa ra sa mo Ra \ r s / n p lu vi ni ka m g / ṡ n p m p n na ru sa lu pa va lu du ṡ ṙ \ d n s \ m d n ra ṇa ra ma ṇa su gu ṇa / r g m d ta ru ṇa ta ṇ s r g m d n ṙ ru ṇi yu ka da ra ka ru : : 1266

32 n Ṡ n ṇa mī ra n d / n d mu ṁ d n d \M g r s ka vu gi lī ra bi rā p d p m g g m du gā nu s n S na rā d / s n nē r G g m m d n ra yē va ra su ka ra n Ṡ ṡ nī s d poṁ n ṡ ṙ ṡ ṙ ġ ṙ du kō ri S n ti n ẇ s R s n p m de lpa m : : d : aṁ G niṁ d p d \m d da mai na r n r g / m du lē da ni n / ṡ n tō g \r r ti ni D / n d M / d m ḍi ce lu lu S rā S d / n d p svara sāhityam G dā / G d d / n d p m g ta va ni ni nu gāṁ ci gha na m G / d p m g r mu khā da la ci ti ra d n s r gā ṡ r ṡ s śri ta ja na G s ra ḍa mu gā du n d n ṡ n d p m hi ta ma hi ta ca ri ta r g m d ra ga ja pa p d n d kṣi ti pa ti g m d n ṡ m d n ti vi nu ta sa la li ta p m g g m p d p na ta vi ta ta su kṙ ta : : 1267

33 p M n mā ni M mā d p p M ṡ n d ta ra mā ta na ya p M g sa mā va ṙ ṡ n d p M g la pu mi gu la mā ṭi m g m p d n ṡ n / s n ṭi ki d n ni nu Ṡ n n d n ṡ n vē ḍi n ṡ tē Ṡ sā m / Ṗ d ṭi ga S ṡ ṡ yi ka ṡ Ṡ n ṭi bō p m g m g na vva ru / r r n mā D n Ṡ m P m rā n D p p m p n n tu lā dhā n D p M svara sāhityam Ṡ sā s s n d p m g mi po ga ḍa ta ra M mā M m g m p d p ṙ bu dha ja na nu ta : : 4. ṡ ṙ ṡ n ja la ja hi /n n \M nī ṡ / g ṙ ṡ n D n p tu va le ne su dā ga p p ṡ ṡ n n n ṭu kā ḍa m p m/ G ru ḍu gā n ṡ hā /m R S ṡ n p ya vi rō dha mu na m p n ṡ ṙ / ġ ṙ ṡ n n S s 1268

34 s Ṙ cē ṡ n ṙ ṡ n ṡ n \ d d ṭai na ma d / ṡ d d da nu p d n ṡ / ṙ n p ḍu p ṡ 5. mē m p / n p m r tē svara sāhityam Ṡ / ẇ r sā ra p sā dhu P d pā d n d p gā ṡ \ n gū s n Ġ / m ṙ ṭi gā ha / g /m m n d p m ṭa ka la ce ṡ n d d p m g m sa mu kha śa ra mu la kṙ d ṡ r g m p d /ṙ ja na mu di ta su gu ṇa ṡ d ṡ ṡ ṭa va mu m p d p d ṭa mai d p/ d p / d m ṭa mi gū ṡ ṙ s n s ṭā r g m p m rā d P / pā ra \S n sā ṁ dra \N kāṁ Ṡ s n mrō g m P ḍi pi n d d D n p m na nu ma di g m r S p m g m p ṙ ṡ n hi tu ḍa yi yē ya ga : : d p /M g p d vi nu mā yi pu ḍu n d d p n d bhō dhi d p d Ṡ ya gā : : g m r g r S ga mu le 1269

35 S S 6. r m r m g ccō svara sāhityam S /ṙ jā la ṡ s ṙ ṡ sa ra sa ta m g so la m g ba ri r s n p ḍ. ṭa kū ya s N d p p M g r mē la ra mā na ra n p / nd / n p /S yu va ru sa yu nu jā m p ṡ \n si bhra ma si / m g / m g / m r g yai nā S gā \S r sā re n p m g ṇa ta na mu N n Ṡ nī r p nu \S m g m p d /ṙ sā re ku va la ce da : : g \S n s / n p m nu jā ra ga na la si n ṡ N p / n p m / p lā a a ṁ \M m g g rā g g m so ga ṇ s vi yā svara sāhityam n /Ṡ sā p p d n d d / n p su mī ra / r g m g r r g m p na rā s s n p m g r ma ja va ra da sa p m m p ga nu m g r g m /M g mā ra \ M m g g \s nā mō m G \S \S ṇ s / g g m p sā dhi pa sa ra gu na : : 1270

36 7. d n s /ṙ da la ci va d / s n sa ra / d p p m ra tu d /ṡ n sau n d d n lō svara sāhityam S n saṁ ta r s n s n \ D p la ci bi li ci tā pa /ṡ n s n \d d sa mu ga nu g r g m p m g \r r la gū ḍi Ṡ \ ṙ ṡ ṙ ġ ṁ ṗ ṁ ġ ṙ rā ṣṭrā d p \m g m p d ko ni yā /ṙ ṡ d p m g n d ta mu ma di ni ga la tu m p m \g ma ṇa ca kā d n d nā s n g m tē ṡ ṡ n di dē d N d p m ḍu du \R raṁ g r S r g m p nu sā dha ra mu na P m tō p d /n / s n \d n d p m ē ē ni nu /g \r ṙ ṡ n ṙ ṡ s śa mu la / d P m g / ru rā Ṙ r g m p d n /ṙ ta mu ta ga du ra : : : : : : 8. n ṡ r s sa ra sa ka d \ m ra ṁ ṡ n d m g m d n vi nu ta ya ba la pa yi g m d / n tu kā ḍa /Ṡ n sā ha /Ṡ yī d \ M g r g m d sa mā ga ri ma ga nu S ṡ va 1271

37 ṡ n ẇ s R sa ṡ d ṡ n n d \m ta sa ma ya d /ṡ n mu lō ṡ ṙ ṡ s n n \d /n n ṡ 9. pa n d ci ṁ svara sāhityam Ṡ ṙ sā me /D n dhā ma ṡ ṙ ṁ ġ sa hṙ da ya ṙ Ṡ n da śrī da Ṡ śrī ġ \ R ṡ tu kē ḷi d /n d m m / p ta le lla ṡ n ẇ s n d d \m d da yi la lo ta ga la du d m d \m g \ r s ṇ ya va ca na vi la sa na ṙ ṡ n s ṙ s n p mu na va la pu ka lu gu P m G r S nā da mō da vā r ṙ d n p m ka ra s n s R kū ḍa ṡ n n d n S n da rā nā g m g dī r /g r S rca rā /N / ẇ s n i ma n d n /ṡ n n d m ti ki gu ru ve na ye su /S / r sā mi s ṅ s m g m d n ga ni nu ma ra va nu rā M g r mā ṭa la M p n ṡ ṙ / Ġ mā ru ba lu ka rā r M m P p N n ṡ ṙ g r mu ka m g M ru dra : : 1272

38 \ g r pri ya r m p d gu ru gu ha / N bha n ṡ ṙ ġ śrī M g ṙ mu ddy Ṡ sā \G dvi g g g R s ra ye ṭṭē ṁ dra r m caṁ svara sāhityam Ṡ sā s n ṗ ṙ ṁ ġ ṙ ra sa mu kha ka ni \m /p m p / n ktu ḍau n p M mi ja ga p n ṅ ṡ ṙ ṁ dra : : ṡ N p ka rā na M \ g ma ṁ ni m G r / g r m g ka rā na ga ri ma ga g r s / N p m / ṡ ṁ ca ra nī da ya kō s n p m ri ti ra p ṡ n ṡ śa ra ṇa ni /ṁ ġ ṙ ṡ /ṙ ṡ / ṙ ma di ni da la ci na ce ṡ n p /n li ni vē ē s s m g vi ye su ja m p /ṙ \S n p /n n pa ri pā la ka ru \M g ṇā la In this rāgamālikā, after singing the mātu, and then the svaram for the first rāgam, namely kēdāram, g r g m p d n n yi ṭu la va la ca ka rā m p m g r s ṇ p. ru ga da la cu ṭa na la r S / ṙ ṡ n p m vā lā nṙ pa ti la ka : : 1273

39 In Honour of His Highness Śrī padmanābhadāsa Vañci Bāla ŚRĪ RĀMA VARMA TIRUVAḌI Kulaśēkhara Kirīṭapati Manney Sultān Mahārājā Rāja Rāmarāja Bahadūr Śamśīr Ja ng Knight Grand Commander of the Most Exalted Order of the Star of India, Fello of the Madras University, etc., etc., Mahārājā of Trāvancore A.6 navaratna rāgamālikā tiśra jāti ēka tāḷa Subbarāma Dīkṣita g m p d n p ṙ ṡ r s n s nī sa ri lē n s d p m p d p m p g m g r ra ni kō ri na r s s ṇ s r g ni tya ka lyā g r g m P d g m g r ṇi ya dhi rā svara sāhityam ḍ / s N d m g r / s M g r s śrī ve la ya ga prē ma nu na va R r G G p M r /G ra tna mā lya mo sṁ gi ra m p d /ṙ \Ṡ n d g /m \ G ṁma ne ga yi ko ṁma ne ni nu na r s n s r g m P d g m g r ṁmi na ko ṁ ma a di rā d n ṡ ṙ ṡ bhā s n d p p d p si lu ni ka M d p d N d mā su da ti pai d p D n Ṡ R g r S pa lu ma ru ma ru n d p m d p D lu ṁ cu mu rā svara sāhityam /N n d p m p d n d p nī su gu ṇa mu la nu po ga ḍu s M /n d p m g r g m p mā ni ni ne na ru ma ru va ku \ M M p d n s r g r s mā mā na sa mu na ma ru n d p m d p D lu ṁ cu mu rā 1274

40 P d N s d p p m g r nī sa mu kha ṁ G m P m m g m p d p bē ga ḍa ta ḍa vu p d ṡ n N d ne la ta jū P / d p m g ḍa ka g r G m d p m s g r s nu ṁ ḍa du rā svara sāhityam / s N d p m g nī ra ja pa da r g m p d p va da na na ya na / p N d p ṡ \ n ṙ ṡ / ṁ g r s nī ra da sa dṙ śa ci ku ra ta pa N s d s ṙ N s d p M p g nī ya ka ma nī ya gha nā ṁ gi r s g / r g m d p m g r s yi ka nu ṁ ḍa du rā 4. m P m/ d m g r s yī su lē ni / g r s ṇ ḍ p. p. /ḍ \ṃ p. ṇ s g ma na mā ra va ri p d \M p /n N s yi ṁ ca neṁ ci /ṙ n d m g p m m G nu ti ṁ cu nu rā svarasāhityam d m g r s n ḍ p. / ḍ ṃ p. ṇ pu ra ha ra gu ru gu ha vi dhi ha ri s g / m g / p m / d p n s / ġ ṙ ha ya su ra va ra nu ta mu ra ha ra Ṡ n d p d \ M p n ṡ n sā ma ja va ra dā ya ka ya ni ṙ n d m g p m m G nu ti ṁ cu na rā g 5. r r r p m r s gā si dī ra ṇ ḍ p. Ḍ s na ba la haṁ sa r m p d p ṡ ga ma na gā ci svara sāhityam ṡ n p p m r s r m g g r S yu ṁ na di rā 1275

41 ḍ s r / p m g r s r g \S a ḷi pi ka śu ka ni ka r ni nā /r s ṇ ḍ p. ḍ S d p Ṡ da mu la ne pu ḍu sai ca tu rā ṙ ġ \Ṡ ṙ Ṡ ṅ P d p ba lu sā ha sā na kā mi ni ṡ n p p m r s r m g g r S yu ṁ na di rā s 6. /r r s d \ m g r s vā si ke kka m g m d / s n s ṡ va le na ni ma gu / ġ r ṡ ṙ ṡ ṅ d /n d \m va saṁ ṁ ta ta me G ṁ ci na di rā m g m d / ṡ ṅ d n \ svara sāhityam / s N d m g m / D m g r ṇ kuṁ da ra da na maṁ da ha sa na /S r S m \ G m D n suṁ da rām gi yaṁ da maṁ da ṡ ṙ ṡ ṙ s n s n d d n d \ ni nu sa ṁ ta ta me m g m d /s n d n \ D ṁ ci na rā 7. p d p m p \r r G p g r yī sa ma ya mu s r s ṡ d p g r /g g na dā ni p d p ṗ \ g p d ṡ G ṁ g ṙ nē cu ṭa na la ṡ n d n p m d p p m g r vi gā du rā svara sāhityam g /p P \r R g G m r S ma ruṁ ḍu ci lka tē ji ne d \P /s s / ġ \R ṡ n Ḋ kki lē ve luṁ gu tō ḍa rā /r ṡ n \ D / n p D g / ṗ g ṙ be da ri jū ce nu rā (ye la ṡ n d n p m d p p m g r vi gā du rā 8. p /r r p m g r g r m śrī su ṁ da rī m /n p m p m g r s ma ṇi ra ṁ ga gu ne da 1276

42 p /n \ m p n n ṡ p je ṁ di na mē li / ġ ṙ ṡ n p m / p m g r s mi ga la dē va svara sāhityam /p m g r s p /R R r bhra ma se nu ra pa rā kē la ra p \M /g r S p /r R r p mā na ra rā ya ḍi kō rva tu \M p n \M p /n N n s rā ma dhu rā dha ra rā bha ḷi \N / ġ ṙ ṡ ṅ p m g r s rā mu di tā tha dē va 9. m g m d p d / n hau su ga tō d p d d N ṗ ṡ ḍi ce li nē la ra s p d n ṡ n d p a bja nā bha M \d d m p d p p m g g r s nā sā mi svara sāhityam G m \P G m / D m bā la śrī rā ma va rmaa g m D n s ku la śē kha ra m D N ṡ ma hā rā ja d /Ġ ṙ s r n ṡ n D p m ki rī ṭa pa ti ni brō cu g m p d n s n d p śrī a bja nā bha m \g g m p d p p m g g r s nā sā mi 9. g g R / g g S g r s ṇ ḍ ṇ s gā rā mu na ka vu gi 8. ṇ p. /r R +p m g r Ṡ lī 7rā ga yi kō rā 7. m p \R G m R s r S pā rā vā rā gā rā 1277

43 6. m g r s m g m d \ M G mā rā ḍa ra yi di mē rā 5 g r s ṇ ḍ p. ḍ s r m g r mā rā ma ku ma na sī rā 4. g m p /n d m p n s ġ ṙ ṡ mā rā kā rā su ku 3 N s d p m / p * g r / d p /ṙ ṡ mā rā ṁ ga rā rā R / ġ r Ṡ n d p m P / d p r sā ra sā ra vi vē kā g m p d / g ṙ n d m g ṙ s dhā rā śri ta ma ṁ dā ra g m p d n s r nī sa ri m g r n r S a a ṇi yi di rā After descending from tōḍi rāga according to avarōhaṇa krama, and singing the sāhityas of each of the featured rāgas, the rendition should be completed ith the eḍuppu (R s r). In Honour of His Highness Bhaskara Svāmi Sētupati Avargaḷ Rājā of Rāmanāḍ A.7 navaratna rāgamālikā rūpaka tāḷa Subbarāma Dīkṣita pallavi G m p m p g m p d gā ra va mu ha ṁ n Ṡ n d m g r r r s r g r r s n s r ka lyā ṇi va 1278 g r s r s r g / p g r s la ca yu ṁ nna di ra : : : :

44 m p d p m g r s gā di ra svara sāhityam G / p M g m p / d m g kā mā ri su ta gu ru gu r ṇ R S / n d m g r ha ku mā rā ni nu da la ci g \ p M p d m P d n p d gha naṁ bu ga ma naṁ bu na di naṁ d n ṡ d /Ġ ṙ ṅ d m g r bu nu nu tiṁ pu cu po lu pu na r r /s r g r r s ṇ s ka lyā ṇi s d n ṡ n d p d n d d p p m vē ru da la ca m g m d n Ṡ gū ḍa du rā : s n : d n ṡ ġ ṙ ṡ ṙ ṡ vē ga tō ḍi s n p d n S n d p d n d teṁ mma ne rā d p p m svara sāhityam D P rā rā d / n d m g r ce li na ṭa cu ṭa S /R g m d n Ṡ mē lā ka la ge nu rā n \D d / G r ṡ n d n s ṙ vā ri jā kṣi yi ka ni mi ṣa mu Ṡ n D m g R ġ ṙ n jū ḍa kuṁ ḍa du rā ta mi ni n ṡ r ṡ n vē d n ga m p d \m sā m g r s s r re ku sa ra r / p m p d n d p m g \r r sā vē rī ti r d / ṙ ṡ / R ṡ ṡ cā na vē ḍu n ṡ \m p d /ṙ ṡ n d p m g r ko ṁ nna di rā 1279

45 svara sāhityam d / n d m ta la pu na g r s ṇ ḍ ḍ / R va a pu ni lu pa lē S r m p / d D p m p ka ka li ki sa dā a li ki d s n d / ṡ s ṙ d /g ṙ r s ce lu va nu ka la ya ga ni bi li ci d / ṙ s \ N d / n d p m p d ce lu vu mī ra pi lu vu ma nu cu d d /ṙ ṡ cā na r 4. n s D n p m P / d p m mā ru ḍu ba ha g m \g m p n d n d p ṭhā na ku su ma p m p /n N ṡ bā ṇa mē ya ṙ /g r ṡ n d n d n Ṡ so la se rā a svara sāhityam \D n P m p /d p m g m śī tāṁ śu ki ra ṇa mu śi khi P / Ṡ n ṡ /ṙ ṡ ṅ ṡ n yai mī ra na ḷi pi ka cu ka ṡ Ġ m ṙ s ṙ \ N s n s r ni nā da mu lu vī nu la ku nu S n \D d p m ṡ ṙ ṡ n cā la śū la mu ga ve la ya ga \M p /n N ṡ bā ṇa mē ya 5. N N Ṡ \n p \m m m p n p \m nī ra ja gaṁ m m g / m r p p M dhi kā ka cē r g \N s /g g m g M nī lā ṁ ba ri m p n p m p m g r / g r / g r \s yai na di rā svara sāhityam 1280

46 ṇ /S s nī pā da n s /g g /m n mu le ga ti ya ni /P \M g / m m g \S pa lā ru ba lke na rā s /Ṡ ṡ n s /ṙ ṡ s n p m sa rō ja ki sa la ya śa ya na mu p /ft n d n p / Ṡ n p m g g na bo da la pi rā ḷi ni be da ri \N s /g g m g m nī lā ṁ ba ri s 6. m P M mā rā mā m \ g r g r g m g r s ma ṇi ra ṁ ṁ gu ni s p p p n m p /n n ma di ne ṁ ci pū s r r ġ ṙ ṡ n p m g r s ji ṁ cu nu ra svara sāhityam P P m g r / p m g r vaṁ dā ru ja na śu bha ka ra \ N /R r r /p m g r s maṁ dā ra pa ra ma pu ru ṣa s /s P p /n m / p g r s /s va ra dā ya ka ya gha ha ra śa ra S / r s n p p m g r r s ṇā ga ta ja na bha ya ha ra ya ni p p ma di 7. n d / ṙ s ṡ / ṙ n d p p vā ra ka su m p /p m m g m p d d kā ṁ bō dhi d m g p d / ṙ ṡ n va ni ta gū ḍi n \p d d Ṡ tē lu mu rā svara sāhityam \N D p m p d n d p nī dā na na ni ne na ru na p M P / d p M g m p d maṁ niṁ cu nā kra ma mu na 1281

47 p D ṡ m g p d s r g m pa rā ku sē ē ya ka 7du ru su ga s ṙ sit r S n d p d d P m g ni ra taṁ bu na sa ra taṁ bu na m g p va ni ta 8. ṡ r ṡ n d p m / d p vī ra da śa mu P m g r r / g r / g s khā ri sē tu r m P m n d n vi bhu bhā ska ra d / n d \m /p m p d ṡ ṡ ma hī pā la svara sāhityam s n d p p M g r \S r /m sa ka la su rā su ra sē vi ta / P \R /m M M /d śrī rā ja rā jē śva P n d /m p / N d S rī ka ru ṇā ka ṭā kṣa la ṡ ṙ ġ ṙ P n d P m g bdhi sa ka la bhā gya dhu raṁ dha ru r s r m P m n d n ḍa ku śrī i bhā ska ra ṡ 9. d d /s d p g tī ru nē lu śrī p d S d p d S ṡ kā rti kē ya s d d ṡ r g r ṡ di vya mō ha na ṡ d ḍ p p g d p p g r s śi khi vā ha na svara sāhityam S \ D S r g / p g r kā ru ṇyā mṙ ta ja la dhi /G P G /d p d /r s gā vā kā va vā su ra sa d p \g g P d s d \p da ya di vya mō ha na g p d p g r s śi khi vā ha na \g 1282

48 9. g /p g r s d s r r / G ni ru pa ma gu ṇa ni dhi ya dhi rā g 8. r m p /n d m ne la ta mo ga mu g r s r M ne la ya ku rā 7. m g / m r / g s ṇ ḍ p ḍ S. ku ru la nu mo ga la ṁ du ru rā 6. P. p /r r r / p m g r S. kuṁ bha ku ca mu lu ga la di rā 5. s ṇ s /g G m g m p \ G sa ra sa ka ḷā ni dhi ya di a 4. n D d n P m m r m p d p /D saṁ nnu tāṁ gi nē ē ca ku rā s n d / n d m g r s ḍ R va ru sa ga ta mi dā ca ku rā g m p d n ṡ va ru ḍa ni ga yi d /g r n D ko ni na di rā n s r /Ṡ n ta ru ṇi nē la d m g r S ni di ta di rā G m p m p gā ra va mu Starting from mōhana rāga, after singing the sāhityas according to avarōhaṇa krama, the rendition should be completed by taking gāravamu. In Honour of His Highess The Honorable Śrī Paśupati Ānanda Gajapati Rāju Manne Sultān Bahadūr, G. C. I. E., Mahārājā of Vizianagaram A.8 rāgamālikā tiśra jāti ēka tāḷa Subbarāma Dīkṣita 1283

49 P M \ r g m kā mi ṁ ca na p D / n d p ka lā va ti rā p d p m g p m m g s ka ru ṇi ṁ cu ṭa \ ṇ ḍ p. ḍ S ki di ta di rā svara sāhityam S m m m \ R G m p d śrī ve la yu śṙṁ gā ra ka lā P d ṡ / P ṙ mā li ka gai ko ni raṁ ṁma d /N d p s \ P d / n D p m r g m ne ne mma di na mmi na ko mma p D ka lā R r g g r s śrī mi ṁ ci na r m p /n n \m p ce lu vu rā p m p /n n n ṡ n p m ce vu lu śrī lai p m r r g r S ce la gu nu svara sāhityam R R g r s \ n s r bi b bhō ga va ti si bbe pu /g r m p n \ m p ṡ \ n ga bbi gu bba lu gu bba lu lai n / g ṙ ṡ n p d n p m je kku va la ke kku va la yi p m r ce la s m g m / d p / D kō ma li nī p D n d p d n d m bf tō ḍi ce lu mi m p \ g m d p d kō ri go li ci n n d D n n s n \ D bi li ce rā svara sāhityam G R n / Ḍ ṇ S n d pāṁ cā li mā na saṁ ra r g M g m d kṣa ku ḍai ka ri rā dva ra da d g r G 1284

50 N Ṡ n D n s r ya ku ḍai saṁ tā pa ha ra d m d /g r \N / r s n ṅ D p / d ga nu ḍai da na ru da yā ka ru p m / p g m ḍa ni kō ri 4. n d p g m p p n nī ma nō n ṡ n d p m g p m g m g s ha ri ya di rā s n d p n s g ne la ta nē ca s s /d d p m g S ta ga du rā svara sāhityam ṡ n ḍ p m g s ṣ ḍ p. ṇ s ne la ne la tu ku la ku ne la va gu g m /d p m g m p n s d p na kha ra mu la ga la ma gu va ci gu \s n /g ṡ / m g s n ṡ n d / n ru la ji gi na ḍa cu na ḍu gu lu ga d d p m g p m g m g s la ya ti va a di rā s 5. g m D / n d p m kā ma pā la m P g g m r s sō da ra yi ka s ṇ r s ṇ s n ḍ ṇ s kaṁ na ḍa na ḍa g g m /d p m /p g /m r s ka va ddu rā svara sāhityam S D d n n S s g vā dē la su gu ṇā la vā g g g m P m d /n n P g la ja na pā la pa ri pā la M D d N ṡ ṙ ġ ṁ gō pā la bā la su ja na Ṙ ṡ D p \ M /d p g /m lō la cā la ba la pa yi ni r s yi s n ka m s 1285

51 6. p m g m / p g / m r s bhā ma pē na n n s / r ṇ s ḍ / s n /S li śaṁ ka rā s n ṡ r g m p d n bha ra ṇa mai ba / ṡ d p m / d P m / n g r s ra gu nu rā svara sāhityam r g /m g r s r /g r s N mṙ du ma dhu ra va ca na ra ca nā ḍ ṇ s m / R G m P / n D la ḷi ta cā tu rya saṁ gī n Ṡ \ D \P m /P m / p ta sā hi tya pra naṁ dha sa g r s ṇ n / r n d mu da ya mu śaṁ m s 7. r r P m mō mu pū rṇa R g g m r s caṁ dri ka ka la s s ṇ ḍ r r sō mu de ga ḍi p m r g m r s me ra yu nu rā s ṡ n p m sō mu de ka ḍi d d m r s r S me ra yu nu rā svara sāhityam G G m r S dō ṣā ka ru ḍai S ṇ p. jī va ni p Ḍ r s R P d P dvē ṣa ku ḍai pāṁ tha him s n P ṙ ġ ṁ ṙ ṡ n p sa ku ḍai ta mmu la gu pa ga dā s r g g m ya yai ya Ru gu de vu lu ga la p m G m r s p ṡ n sō mu 8. p m p d n d p m \ g g r r s lē ma muṁ gu ru ṇ s Ḍ ḍ d g g r r s lū ru lu va rā 1286

52 ṡ g r g / p m p d / n ḷi raṁ bha lai p d n d p m r g r S da na ru nu rā svara sāhityam r / G r G / n M p D m p nā ri nū gā ru cī ma la / D p D n ṡ ṡ D /ġ \ṙ bā ru ce ra la ku mī ru kaṁ ṙ s / r n d \ M g R g m ḍlu bo ma lu mā ru viṁ ḍla yi p d n d p m r g r S ta na ru nu rā s 9. m g r m p m sā ma ja sā g r /g r s R mya yā na rā r m d ṡ d s d cā na ku sā p m g r /g \r s ṭi la lē rā svara sāhityam /d p m m g r / p m g r /g r ku ru lu mp gu la te ga lu na ga va s r r / p \m d ṡ ṡ d p m g la ru lu nu du ru ne la sa ga ma nu g r du ru m d ṡ cā na ku 10. r r r kā mi r P m g r ni nī r G r s s ṇ ḍ p. / n ṇ s ke dā ra s S ġ ṙ ṡ n d d N p gau ḷā dhā m P m g \r r m g r g \ r s rā dha ra ra svara sāhityam r /m g r s ṇ ḍ p n s r r pa lu ku du ra la ra va la ni pa lu r m p / n d p m p n s r ṁ ku du ru ka li ka ci la ka la ko li g r n s ṙ S s n d d p ki ra ma ru ni pū mu li ki ma dhu p \m g r rā dha s 1287

53 1 m p /d p m m g g g kā mu kā ka m P m m d p d N d mā su ṁ da ri n /r ṡ r d ka ṁ di vaṁ du d d p d / n d / n p p m d p D ra ṁ du nu rā svara sāhityam /N d p m g M d p m g i mmu ga me yi so mma si la ga M m n d d \ P d n ṡ ka mma ni ya dha ra mmo sa ti saṁ s s m g ṙ ṡ mma da mu na s /ṙ \P \N d sa ṁ mmā niṁ pa p d n S n n D p \ M m ta gi na ye mme lā ḍi ya mma g m p d ya ni kaṁ di s 1 m m g r s ṇ ḍ p. rā m mā ru p ḍ ṃ p ṇ S ka g.. va lu ka ā g g m p D p n rā pu je ṁ di n ṡ ṡ / ṙ n d m G sō lu nu rā svara sāhityam R g \R s \ N d \ Ṃ p. ciṁ ta dhī ra ceṁ da rā ra Ṇ s G g M m p /n d yiṁ ti vaṁ ta leṁ ta ya ni va \ M P n ṡ Ġ Ṁ Ġ r n ci yiṁ tu ra kāṁ ta maṁ ta na d mu m g m nu rā pu g 1 g m r s ṛ g kā mi ta śu bha m p D p d n d pha la dā d \ s ya n ṡ D kā d n d p m m / d p pi m r /g g g m r s nā ka pā ṇi svara sāhityam 1288

54 G G / m r s / P p m gaṁ gēṁ du dha ra tā pa ha p d /n P p m p d n s ṙ ra ka ru ṇā ka ra gu ru gu ha gu s G ṙ ṡ N d P m d p ru śaṁ ka ra kā la kā la pi m r /g g nā ka s 14. r R g kā mē G m p śā m p m G m G m r g r n nu kā va va s Ṡ n s d /n p ka ṭā kṣi ṁ pa p \r g m p d p m g g / m r s vā ya nu rā svara sāhityam n S Ṡ ṡ ṡ N s D p bṙṁ dā ra ka bṙṁ da vaṁ dya \R G m p /d p M G r vaṁ dā ru ja na maṁ dā ra s Ṡ n s d /n p ka ṭā kṣi ṁ pa s 15. p g p d p p g r s r g ā mō ha nā r s s s ḍ s r r /g g ṁ gi ne ṁ ca ra g / p g / p g p d /ṙ ṡ ā da ri ṁ ci s \g p d p g r s lā li ṁ ca ra svara sāhityam g /p g r s r g r \S s \ r ka la ga ni ka ḷa va ḷa maṁ di ka s ḍ p d S s s r g r /g. la gu ka la kaṁ ṭhi ca nu mo na laṁ g g / p g /d p g p d /ġ ṙ s ṭi ka la va ra ga ḷa ra va mo saṁ s d p d /ṡ d d p g g /d p la pu la ka le ga ya na na gi pe g r na gi ġ g ā di 1289

55 16. d \M g g m d n śrī maṁ da ka vi va na d /n /Ṡ s ṡ /ġ ṙ ṡ n va saṁ tu śrī ga ja pa ti d /n d m g m d n d n kṣi ti pa ti ra kṣiṁ ga śrī ṡ ṙ ṡ ẇ s n s ṙ n d m g r s pā rtha sā ra thi svara sāhityam S n \D / Ṇ s ṇ s G ā ryā mō da ka ru ḍai m g m d n d \ M d n Ṡ a khi la vi bu dha pō ạ ku ḍai /Ġ ṙ Ṡ n ṡ n \D / Ṡ rā ja rā ja sa khu ḍai sa N d M g m d d N s rva jñu ḍai vi la sa lu pū sa N d / Ṡ N d /g ṙ ṡ ṅ pā ṭi ā naṁ da ga ja pa ti d /n d m g m d n d n kṣi ti pa ti ra kṣiṁ cu śrī ṡ r ṡ ẇ ṙ s n s / n d m g r s pā tha sā ra thi 16. m g r s s m \ G m d \M ma na sā vē reṁ ca tu rā s r g r S n Ḍ / r s / R ma na sā vē reṁ ca tu rā 15. d p g r s S \D s r /G ma ra va ku raṁ jiṁ cu mu rā m g r s N s r / g r N ma ra va ku raṁ ji ṁ cu mu rā s 14. r r R g m p m g m r g r s ma na sā ra ṁ ga da nu pa rā r g m r s s p m r g m R ma na sā raṁ ga da nu pa rā 1 m p g m r s r g m p d d /n n P ma da va ti ka lyā ṇi rā m g r s R g /d \ m g r g g r ma da va ti ka lyā ṇi rā 1 s / r ṇ / s ḍ \ Ṃ P. ṇ s m G va ni ta kāṁ bhō ji yau rā s r s ṇ Ḍ ḍ / s ṇ p. Ḍ va ni ta kāṁ bhō ji yau rā S 1290

56 1 m g M p p /d p M G M va ra paṁ tu va rā ḷī rā s r G m p d n \ D d p m va ra paṁ tu va rā ḷī rā 10. r m P n d p m g r g \ R ca nu vā ra bi ru du lī rā r m g R s r s s ḍ /r s R ca nu ā ra bi ru du lī rā 9. M d Ṡ \ d p \ M g r g r jā ṇa yā ha ri ma dhya rā M \ g M m /n \ D p \ m p jā ṇa yā ha ri ma dhya rā 8. s s m p p / d m / p g r g r r S gha na gau ra va mu ga la di rā n p M r /p m r g m R gha na gau ra va mu ga la di rā 7. Ḍ R r p m r g m R ka rṇā ṭa vi bhu vi nu ta rā P. S p m g r g m \ R ka rṇā ṭa vi bhu vi nu ta rā 6. m g \ r s / d p p / s p \ m G ma na vi ni pri ya mu na vi na rā d g m p \r r g g / p g r s ḍ p. g r /G ma na vi ni pri ya mu na vi na rā 5. ṇ s G m d d d n ṡ n \D ma ga pā ḍi ga la ca tu ra rā r m P d d p d p n Ṡ ma ga pā ḍi ga la ca tu ra rā 4. n ṡ g s N D p m G ma nu na ta nī nā ya ka rā r m p d p d /n s d p m r g r g r g r s ma nu na ta nī nā ya ka rā m d n n / ṡ n d d / n d p m G ma dhu ra sa la li ta va ca na rā r /g r s ṇ ḍ \ṃ ḍ ṇ s r S ma dhu ra sa la li ta va ca na rā m r m p m p n s n s r g ṙ S ma nu pa ru ju ga la ta ru ṇi rā s /m g / d p /s n d p m G ma nu pa ru ju ga la ta ru ṇi rā m r S p / n d p p m \ R ma di gau ri ni lu pu sa ti rā s s / M m g m /d p p \R ma di gau ri ni lu pu sa ti rā A.9 rāgamālikā rūpaka tāḷa Subbarāma Dīkṣita 1291

57 pallavi n d va la n ṡ n d n s s pu mī ri s p d tō n ṡ n d p m g m ḍi te ṁ ṁma ne d / n \ D rā D d n d m nā d n Ṡ sā S n ṡ n d p m a mi i : : : : M /d va d n d n ṡ n d nne lā ḍi m / P niṁ p m p D p m m nnē ne Ra m m naṁ / d P / d p m g r s r ṁmi yu ṁ na ti g m G rā g r \ ṇ s r g m sā mī : m : : g m g rā \R S a a svara sāhityam / D p dhā rā S d p \ G m p dha ra dā na vai p d / n d bha vu ḍa m g r ṇ s r g m ni ma di da la ci na ti 1292

58 \ G gā m ra m \ G d d \ M / n ḍa mē la ra mā na n \D /ṡ ra dā ni s \N / ṙ ṡ n d n ki nī ve ye na ya ni : : : : s s r ma di neṁ n d ca ra n ṡ \N d p ma ru luṁ ca ra D d n ka ru ṇiṁ p m p /d p M g g ca ra sū ma mā rga ṇa /M m mā mā p M /n ru da ya mā li m p d p d p p M pa lu mā m / ṡ n d p M p ru ba ra pe gā d n ṡ n ba n d d p lu m g g r M su kha mā d p su da d n di D d p kī ka lu d n r ṡ ga pē ṡ n n d p m na m d p yi di D rā D D :: : : ṗ m pa ṇa g g g m r r ti nī ru m ġ r ġ r ṡ pu ṡ ṡ ṡ s r n da la ci da 1293

59 n n la ci n ṡ n ṡ d d p \ d m ko ni yā m g g r ḍu nu \p p M rā M svara sāhityam N d nī dā D P M n d pā mā ni nī d p /d p m ma ṇi mā m g sa m g r g m p ra mu ga yi ko nu \ M m mā mā M s m M m na sa maṁ da p M nu mā d na p M n d m p d mu mā ni ta di ya ni / N D p nī ṭu so m g ga su R g m p d rī ti ka lu ga / p N s r nī ra ja g m d / s N ṡ n s r mu khi nī su gu ṇa mu / G r kāṁ kṣiṁ r ṡ \ N D p pu vī kṣiṁ pu /M \ g mā sā g r S r g m p ra sā ri yu na gu d n ṙ ṡ n ka lu d p p n d p d va la rē p7m m ḍu tu lu m M / d p m G va da na ṁ 1294

60 g r g s bhai s r G m p ra vi va le d gā N d n r ṡ n d p ya gā : p : : d gā p ṙ ṡ ṙ ṙ si je ṁ di s r G vā g g m g ṙ ṙ ġ si ka lu gu r ṡ na ni s ṡ ṡ n s n gā ci yu ṁ d p M d nna p m g r r g \S di rā svara sāhityam d / N n ni rṇī n N d d n d d ti nne na ru ma ra n d d n ci ti vi ya d d p \M ni bi ti mā n d d li go li n ci d d p go li ci \M /d p d \M p mā na va ti mā ṭa \M d \m mā ṭi mā m \ g r G m p d ṭi ki vē ḍe nu ra 4. p d ṡ m a dha ra ma g s d ṡ s r m g dhu ra ta ra ra sa mo sa p d ṡ r gu vi pu ḍu g r Ṡ n d m p /d ra sā dha ra vi bu dha 1295

61 / d P m ja la g r g r S m g p na va ra sā ga ru ḍa d ṡ ja la n d P ja mu kāṁ m p d p m g bō G m g dhi g m p ga ṁ D /n n d bhī rā d m g ce li p d d / r ṡ n ya nē lu n p d kō S S rā s ṡ d sa la ṡ ṙ ṡ r ġ r li ta gu ṇa ġ ṙ g M sā ṁ g r ṙ ġ r vi dha gu ṇa p d Ṡ śrī ṡ n n d d p / d m rā ma m g. m r ca ṁ / g s m g p d dra dhī ra svara sāhityam Ṡ d sā dhu /r s n d p m g m ja na sa mu da ya nu ti P d pā ṭa /ṡ n d p m g r g va mu mi gu la ga lu gu 1296

62 \S /r sā rva p ṇ ḍ P. ḍ s r bhau ma sa nnu ta hi g r S /m ta sā ra g r \ S m g p d va ti saṁ ta ta mu na /g g ṙ /ġ na va ma ṇi / r n D n ṡ ṙ /d ma ya dhā ma mu na dā d n / G n gā r \ n d / N \d ra viṁ ci nī dā d n \G ni ni gā g / M m /d D /g ga brō vu mu dā ka \ r n d rā da nu m g r S g m d pu mu ra rā sa da ya valapu This rāgamālikā should be sung exactly like the kēdāra rāga navaratnamālikā. 1297

63 A.10 rāgamālikā ādi tāḷa Subbarāma Dīkṣita pallavi m g m / D d / n d p d p m g ma na tō di ṇa ṅki na M d d m mā tu mī d n S ṡ n d s m g tu m g m / d ma na tō d m mī d n s n s s tu s p d n ṡ r s ṡ n d p m g m p d p p m g mai ya lē ni l lai yai : : g R S p d yā pa n n s s n d p m \g r s r g ni ru kai yā svara sāhityam m d m \ d m d / n d n d n g r r n n sa ra sa pa vi ṣu pe ru kka ka ru ṇai ce y mu ru ka Ṡ n d p m [p d] mā ku ru pa ra [pa n] n s r s r g ni yā anupallavi 1298

64 r g r r s r g g r r s r / p m m ka na ka ma zhai po zhi yuṁ śrī p m p s n ṡ mu ttu sā r g r r s ka na ka m p n s ṙ /G ṙ ġ ṙ r ṡ n ṙ ṡ ṡ n p k kā r mu ki lai kkā k kuṁ m p /n N ṙ s s n p vē lā vu svara sāhityam /g r s / m r / /n p m / ṡ n p /g r Ṡ n di na mu mi ka u ma tu pa da ma la rai ccin tai p d n \P p m [u] p ya til ni nain ta vuḷ u R S g r s r ṇ /r \S p p. ṇ kō lā ha la śu bha ka ra lī la a su s r g R r / p m ra ku la kā la su gu tōḍi s r g M d d p g M d n s d n vi ki ta mā ka a ti ka mō ha mu ṭan su ra n p n s s n p m mi ye ṭ ṭa mak s n ṡ ṡ ye ṭ ṭa ma ṗ n p m r g g r r s mai bā la maibālā /n P m r g r s ṇa śī la gu ru gu ha : : 1299

65 caraṇam m g m p m d p d n ṡ n d p m g ka na mā na va ñ ca ka /G r S n d /n ta ttil me tta yi li D m g g r s r ru tti va kai va kai yāy m g m ma na m [ \M mā ci m d n ṡ s n d n s k kā k ka i vva ḷa vu p d N d nṡn n d d Riya va ḷai s n s d n p m g ne ñ ca ka r g m p d p p m m g g r r s s mā a a d p n ṡ d n p m g d d n P svara sāhityam G M p d n M n d n ṡ\n n d kā mātu ra mā na tumi ku n tā lin 4. r g / n M m p d / n D p di na mā ma ti ni ra ṁ ba ta ne ñ ca ka mā ṗ / n p d \m d p yi ra vi po d n s ṡ n d p m g g r r s lu lā va : : 1300

66 r g / p M d p di na mā pō s p d n d n d n ṡ n ṡ ġ ṙ r ṡ s n n ti ya ṅ ki ma ya ṅ ku Rā d n ṡ n ṡ ṡ lu lā va d \m m m p / ṡ n / ṡ \p ḷ u n nu ṭa d p m / d p m g r s n ku lā va svara sāhityam g R g m p d \ M p d n ṡ ṙ /Ġ ka lā va ti yai ni lā va ti nil ca ri cal 5. g d p p p \r m g g / p g r s ci na mā kā ta va ḷ g R ṡ / ṙ n ḋ p lā pa mu ṭa ni ṇaṅ m p G m p d kā ya mu na M (m /d p m g r s ki kku lā va ṡ n d /n d p Ṡ ta l la vā s g ṙ ġ ġ ṙ r ṡ n r ṡ n s n \ G ci tta ca n ka ṇai yai d ṡ n d n n p g v l la me /d p p m g r s l la vā svara sāhityam G g / D d \ G r \Ṡ ṡ ṙ ṡ ṙ s d in ta mō ṭi va nta tē tu a va ḷai mē 1301

67 ṡ n ḍ s p ( m g vvu ñ ca ma yaṁ me lla vā d / 6. s /g g / m g r s ḍ s ḍ p ḍ n s s. ka na mi n nār mu n nā ṭa s s n d n ṡ n n d d p ku ruñ cci yā r ka ḷ s /r / g g / m ṙ ṙ / g ṡ ṡ n / ṅ s ṡ n / ṡ n ka na ka ma yi l mī ti l va d d p d n ṡ \ N ru ṁ ka n tā svara sāhityam g m / p g r s / n d /n p d n s /ṙ \Ṡ śa ra va ṇa bha va bha va ha ra a ra na ruḷ mai n d ( d p d n s \ n tā (ka n tā n Ḍ n s /g Ġ m / p g / m r / g s sa dā ka zhu ku mā ma lai yi la ṭi yār kar ka ṇ d n ṡ n d n ṡ ṡ ko ṇ ṭā ṭa d n n d m g s su ka n tā d n n d m g s su kha ṁ tā : : 1302

68 tōḍi d m g M d n ṡ d n s r g M d vi ki ta mā ka a ti ka mō ha mu ṭan su ra ḍ / ṇ \P. ḍ ṇ s ruḷ puri ntu ma na /G r S n d /n ta ttil me tta yi li /g G m / p g r s ma kizh nta śa ṇ mu kha D m g g r s r ru tti va kai va kai yāy m g m m n 1303

69 Words and Music by Ponnayya An illustrious dancing master if Tañjore Words revised and improved by Subbarāma Dīkṣita at the request of Rājā of Vēṅkaṭagiri and the late Mr. V. Rāmacandra Rao Avargaḷ Deputy Police Commissioner, Madras (see next fe pages in landscape mode) 1304

70 pallavi ṡ n va ni S nē A.11 rāgamālikā rūpaka tāḷa Subbarāma Dīkṣita d ṡ n d P da rō m p /d d yē p m g r s ṇ ṇ ḍ mi sē tu s m g p d a hō p d ba la ṡ n d p p p bi la ha ri R R m p /d d na ṁ m s r G a svara sāhityam P pā \ gō p m g r s ṇ ṇ ḍ nnē śa r s r nē r g P m g p d a a a : : \m g \ r g rtha va ra da P pā \ m g r g rthi va na ta s \P d pā la r s śi khā r g \ r g ma ṇi dvi S P d p pā va na m g r / g r s ṇ ḍ ka lu ṣa ha ra pa ti ta \P. ḍ s pā va na r g / p m g s r g vi dhi ha ra gu ru gu ha 1305

71 P d n pā va ni P d p pā li vi P d /ṙ pā ra ka s n va ni p D p ma rā ḷa s R g ni ra mma p d n s mu da mu na r / G r ne jē re p m p d n va rā d p m g r s r g vi nu ta su ca ri ta kṙ m g P m g r s pu na pā ṭa la mṙ du ṡ n P d /ġ ṙ ṡ ma la pā ṇi da la ca d ṡ n d P ta rō m G r g P m ga mā bhra ma rā ḷa \ r G p nna rā dha (virāḷi) r / ġ ṙ ṡ / g ṙ ṡ n ma da va ti sa da na mu s ṇ s r G m ne mī re ne rā ma d p m g g r s ḷi ja P d ṡ pā ḷō ya \P d s pā da mu P d s pā ḍo da g \ R s ka rā ve /d d p m sa da yu ḍu r \ N d nu dū rē p D n vi nu s n s nu n d p d Ṡ ni po ga ḍi nā r g P d ṡ n d la ja pā dha ra ve ta n d P m g p d ve kṣa pā ka ra mu khi m g p m a a r G r s Ṇ ḍ vi rā ḷi ni cau ri M g /n D m / d ne jī re ne kō re d p M m P mā s g r g m l na vva ga 1306

72 p d vē s n s ḍē / s N ṡ/ ġ ṙ ṡ n d ga tō d d / n d nu p m g g R s n m nā Ṡ ṡ n svara sāhityam / P pā / S tō e e / d p m / d la na mu nu g r g m ce li mu nu d / s N d * e \ M mā P d p pā ḍi nā p m p m g r g m e e e g r s n na va ni yen G r G m ḍo nē ḍu vī ḍē p m / n s / g r S r S n /P m g pā ḍi lē P d / s n pā ḍu gai ni cā ḍi mā ṭa Ṡ lge pal ga ve tā \P. ḍ ṇ pā ḍu neṁ G r G m ci rā ḍe ri cca n d P d /n / P d p pā la vi m g dhu ni g r g / p m / G gā /S sā d p na ra sa ma dhu ra / n d m g ca tu ra ka ḍ p / ṇ d. ga ra śa ya ṇ r / d m g r / g r vi ta la ra sa me ru gu / s n / r s g r g m nu ni da la ci ga de S S 1307

73 p d p s pa da ve sā S \m sā raṁ s ṡ ṙ Ġ g ṙ ṡ ma ja gā mi ni rō / R r rī ti ṡ n d n p d p / ṡ gani paninigona ve M \G \R ṇ kā bjā kṣi s s gha na d d d p d ga ma ka p d / n kri ya g / p m gā ṡ n vi ni svara sāhityam P pā P gā d p p m g r g m ve la p D p p Ṡ n na mu R /ġ ṙ ṡ n piṁ ci m g r g la nu ḍa gu /P m ya /d n / ṡ d p m me ppi ṁ / s M mā s r vi ri g m d p m g R vī ṇā \p D p /ṡ s na g r g /m g r s ci ti ne g r s d ru ḍu va ḍi r g g m śa ra mu la S S /P d pā da p p m mg r g m kamni talacakana P m pā ra g g r r s r s mukha parapagamadhu s 1308

74 \P d pā ḷi P d p pā li vi P pā s s r r g g m m ravamulu migulanu m g bhu ni P d pā dhi n p d p Ṡ ka li ge ne g / m g g r r s d p d p p m m g r vu ra pu pa lu ku lu /G gā ga ḷa ra va ma la ra P p śrī dha 4. dhanyāsi s G m ra miṁ ci g m dha ni ḍ p S ṇ R s. ru ḍu kau gi liṁ ci g M p n Ṡ r su khiṁ ci bra miṁ ci P / N yā sīṁ Ṡ sā n ṡ ṡ n D ci yē s N d p m g r s ṭi yi la lō ta ga la p / n n Ṡ s g m dai p N / ṙ ṡ va mau śrī P n ṡ ṡ pā rttha le nē ṡ n d p m g r s sā ra thi P \g m svara sāhityam P pā ya ni p m g pa rā g r s \ n ku ka la 1309

75 g m g m P p ṇ va / P dā P d p pā ṭa pā d p m g m ḍe ne ta la pu ma ra s g la dā P d p pā ye pāṇ va la pu p \ Ṇ s g G m ḍyā di dha rā dhi p m g m p n Ṗ p / s n p n ṡ / g r ṡ n ṡ P d p pā la pā \P d p pā da pā la śri ta ja na su ra m g m p n Ṡ ya ni po ga ḍi nā \P d p pā da pā P d p pā li ni jha ni pā ga tī pā m g P m g r s bhu ni pā ṭa la mṙ du \P d s pā da mu P d s pā ṭo da r g P d s n d la ja pā dha ra ve ta n d P m g p d ve kṣa pā ka ra mu khi P d ṙ pā ra ka ṡ n va ni ṡ n P d ġ ṙ ṡ ma la pā ṇi da ca d ṡ n d p ta rō 1310

76 Rāga Tāḷa Mālika Composed by Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita in Honour of Vēṅkaṭakṙṣṇa Mudaliyār alias Cinna Mudaliyār Manali (Near Madras) A Liberal Patron of Learning and of The Fine Arts (ho flourished during the close of the eighteenth century. A.12 Rāga Tāḷa Mālikā Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi S M /P nā ṭa kā di S p M p m g / p p m p N P p m /n p vi dya la ba p m m m g m P p m g /p m m r lu mē ṭi va r S p M g m /p m m r s s ṇ s dhū ṭi yau rā s s r s n s ṇ p. p. P yi di dhru va G g m r s / R R mu gā svaram s s /m M m g m m P p p S s n p m P p m g m r s p m / m m r s ( dhruvamugā) 1311

77 anupallavi r \Ṇ ṇ s R p m g m nī ṭu vā ḍi g M P bā R p M p m g m m gau lā li ta gu ṇa \ r r m P / n p m m P ni dhi yā ma ṭṭe ġ m p m e e mu di r s n s r s R s r s ṇ s ta nu gā na nu svaram r g m R s p \m n \P ṡ n p m r g m r ( muditanugānanu) S s sā ṭi m /P d p D m m g g lē ni ja va R g r / g r rā s r g R S / r s n s g li di ma nma tha d g r g sva rū m p / d p p d / n ṡ g pa ka li ta 1312

78 ṡ R \n d p m vē ṁ ka ṭa p / d m / p g r s r / g r s kṙ ṣṇē ṁ dra svaram / G r / g r s R s / r s n s r g / p M p / d p d / s N ṡ (vēṁkaṭakṙṣṇēṁdra) muktāyi svaram g r R g r s r s S / r s n s r g R g r s g r g / m / P d p d /n / Ṡ p /d p m / P g r r g r s nāṭa, dhruva R s s r \S s s ṇ s m m r s p P p m m R R p m r s /p m / n \P\M /p m m r \S r g m p d n s s n p \M m r\ ( nāṭakādi) caraṇam 1313

79 4. s r s r G \r g /P P / g p / d p sa ra saṁ bau lī la la g p ca tu p / d p d rō ktu la P / d d /n d p p D /n d p p G g p sa ti ki vē lpu ṭo jjha ṁ p d p pe na g r /g r s go nu ma ti svaram f R s r G r g P g p / d p d /n D d P g r s r G / d ( penugonumati) 5. ḍ ḍ P. ḍ s su ra sā la ṁ s r s s ga nā ṭa ṛ ṛ m \ g r lu nī pai 1314

80 r m P d d so kki mai tri pu p m p d p ṭa ma rṁ ce nu 6. m \ g r s dā ni svaram ḍ ḍ P. ḍ s s r / M \ g r /m m / p P / d d p D n n s R R r g r S ha ru ṣa ṁ bē s /r / g r s s g r S ṇ Ṇ jū ḍa g ni Ṇ \P. tya / Ṇ S śrī s ṇ s R m r m m s r / p M ya ṭa tā la li p m /P P p n P m m p m tā ṁ ta raṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ R R ṁ ga r g r S yā di svaram 1315

81 0r / n p / n m / p r / p m / p r / g r s / m r m p / s N /Ṡ \R m p n n ṡ n P m m p m ta ra ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ R R ṁ ga r g r S yā di 7. s r s ḍ ṇ ḍ p ṃ p. ḍ. a ru dā ra bi la ci p ṃ p. ḍ S r m \ g r. yē ka bhō ga mu ga svaram r /p m \ g R r / m \ g r s / r s \ ṇ ḍ p ( yēka bhōgamu ga) 8. Ḋ r m g r s ṇ s Ḍ R ṡ s ṇ s R a ti la li tā ya nu d s ḍ Ḍ \M D s N s r s s ṇ /S m m g m D g m /d m g /m g r s cu nu la li nē lu mu svaram r S s ṇ ḍ Ḍ ṃ Ḍ ḍ ṇ ḍ ṇ ṣ r s ṇ ṣ r g M s r g M m / D d \M m G g \R 1316

82 s r \S s s ṇ /S ṇ s r g m / d m g r s r G ( nēlamu) muktāyi svaram R r s s ṇ s r ṇ s r s s n d m ḍ ḍ ṇ ḍ ṇ s r s n s r g m s r g M m g m m D d g m D d m g M m m g \R s /r \s s n s ṇ s R g M d \M g /m g r s nāṭa s s r \S s s ns M m r s s P m m \ R p ṙ s m r s p m / n \P \M / p m m r \S r g m p d n ṡ s n p \M m r \ ( nāṭakādi) 9. S g r g m p d d p / n n d p m g \r s ṇ s g r G m m g r g g /m g \R S rā ma kri yā vi ṣē ṣa mu le ṁ nna 1317

83 P G g /m g g r s ṇ s d d p m /P s d p m la kṣa ṇa va ti yau rā d p d d /n /Ṡ sa ra si jā kṣi S s /d p p m g m g \r s svaram /d d p m G / p m \ G m \ G r s s g r g g m p d p d / n \D p d (sarasijākṣi) 10. S / m G r / m G s r g sā ma s r / g r s s s ḍ g r mā ma ru R m m M m G r / m G rprar g r s s R ra ti lī la D s r s r /p m g m g g r s r / g r s r \S ki dē e e e ṭi svaram S d P m g r s r p \M m G g r s r m G r s r /m m D /S 1318

84 (ratilīlakidēṭi) 1 n s / r ṇ d / s n P n śaṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ S g r G g m g r / g r g / m r s n s / g r s n ka rā bha ra ṇa mu ja ya S s p g R S ma gu svaram S ṇ s ḍ ṇ \P. ḍ ṇ s r s n m s / m G r s r R g s ṇ s d n S /r / G m p d P m m n s r r / g r s n S s p gr S ja ya ma gu rā 1 ṇ s R dhī r r r g r s ma ṇi r g r s r s ṇ / s ṇ ṇ p ṇ s r p m g r r s ra ṁ ṁ gu mī ru ma ri yu na ṇ s r r di na mu da r g r s ṇ rpa ṇa 1319

85 s P m p /n p m P p m g r r s ka pō la na po ḍa ga ni svaram Ṇ S r n /r p / n p P m g r r \S s r /p Pp /r p P /n p m 1 S yā S r p m g r r s (poḍagani) n d n d P ḷa va śrī ṇ ḍ ṇ ṣ mā P ḍ ṇ ḍ P. ṇ ḍ ṇ s ṇa di ni ja S /g G mu ga ṇ s g S ṇ d n s rā ja Ṃ P. ṃ p. N ke na yu gu G S ma ṇ ḍ P. ṇ ḍ ṃ p ṇ ṇ ḍ p ṇ ḍ ṇ s.. cū ḍā ma ṇi ka la yu mu 1320

86 svaram S / M g \S s g \S s ṇ ḍ P nd n s \ N s g S s s S s ṇ ḍ ṇ ṇ ṇ ḍ ṃ ṇ ḍ ṇ ḍ ṃ /Ṇ ṇ ḍ Ṇ ṇ ṇ S s ṇ ḍ ṃ g. ṃ Ṇ ṇ ṇ ḍ ṇs s s ṇs /m m g s (rājacūḍāmaṇi kalayumu) muktāyi svaram m m \S m g \S s / g s ṇ ḍ ṇ ḍ ṇ S s ṇ ṇḍ \P. p. / ṇ ḍ \Ṃ ṇ ṇ ḍ / Ṇ s m g g / M m g s ṇ ḍ P. / ṇ ṇ ḍ ḍṃ p ṇ ḍ ṇ S. g g / M g s s m g s m m g s ṇ ḍ p. ṇ ḍ P. P. ṇ ḍ m : n d : : m : n d n s : : : 1321

87 s s n : n: d : p : n : n: d : \M : n : d : n: d n s /g s S s ṇ ṇ ḍ P. p. ṇ ṇ ḍ ṇ s s r \S s s n s m M r s caraṇam 14. m P pā (nāṭa) P P d p ṭa m m p d m m p m R pā ḍi S r s s \r /m M P d p N /Ṡ ṡ n p d p d p m r s me ppi ṁ tu rā va da na svaram /d d p P m r s r m p D d p m d P p m r r S r r s s ṇ S r r m M m p m p D d p m p d P N Ṣ s n p /D p N (vadana) 1322

88 15. P / d m p m \ g g m g m p pa dma ma la m / G g g M /d d d n S n d p m g / p m m / p g r S ra tō ḍi te ttu ni ṭa ra ti svaram s g m G n \ D n /ġ ṙ ġ d / ṙ ṡ ṙ n / ṙ Ṡ n d /n \D p m ( tettuniṭarati) S p g g r g g m p m p / n 16. S sā ṭi yai d p m /d p p m m g m p D n d n ṡ n d p d n d p d \P m P na ka lyā ṇi rā d m g R g /d p m ja g r /g g R sa mā svaram G m M p g /m P / d p m g r g /d \P m g /p \M g m P p m /n d p m g r s g m p d n s n /r 1323

89 ṡ / ṙ n Ṡ ṡ d /n s /d m P p ṡ n \ D P m g m /P r m g R g /d p m g r /g g R rā ja sa mā 17. G m g \R s r sau g m p m /P rā ṣṭra dē d P m G r P p p p m / s r g m / p \ \ g r s n /g r R S g r g m p d n ṡ / d P m g r s ṇ / g r s ṇ ḍ ṇ s r śa mu ni ki su kī rti i svaram /d d p d \ p p m p \M / p m g r / G m p m g r g m p / d \P / d P m g r / g \R S ṇ d n s r /g \R G M p d / n / S \ D p m /d p M p G m r d P m g r s ṇ g r s ṇ ḍ ṇ s r g r g m p d n s su kī rti rāma samā is yet another pāṭhāntaram (version). The rāja tāḷam is also knon by the name rāma tāḷam. 1324

90 18. R g /p m \ g r s ṡ pō ṭi mē ṭi g R n s n r s R r g ni cca lu ba hu / p P M p m P śā nī P ṡ ṡ n d P d p po ṁ du kō ri ṇ s r r g r g r / G R M d p p m g r s yuṁ nna di ku ṁ da ra da na rā svaram P n d p \M / d p m g r r s r G / m g r S r g m p \ M P m \G r / M \ G r S r ṇ s r g m P m p /n d P m p d n ṡ ṙ Ṡ n d p M g R s ( kundaradanarā) S 19. G m g m p g g m R r G r s ṇ S mā ṭi ki kaṁ nna ḍa yē / G m /d p la ra m g r s ma da na ka svaram 1325

91 G M / D p m p \G m / p g/ m R S G M D n /Ṡ n D D P g m d p (madanaka) 20. s Ḍ s ma la ha S s r m p ri va la ne ḍa d p p m p ya ka krī d p m g r s ḍa lga na svaram r m g r m p d s d /r ṡ S s d d p P p s D p (krīḍalgana) muktāyi svaram r r m mp m p d d p m P p m g r s nāṭa s s r \S s 1326

92 caraṇam 4. 2 Ṇ S g r s ṇ ṇ Ḍ ka na ka su P. p ḍ Ṇ ḍ p / ṇ Ḍ ṃ.. pra bhai p ḍ / Ṇ / ṇ ḍ n s R r s r / g r / g. g R ra vi ka ki ka ri yu g r r g / p p m P m p d P d p d d p p m ga bbi ca ṁ nnu la du ma p ṡ n n D d p p m / ṡ n n D p m / d p m G r s vi ja yā naṁ da mu svaram / N d / n n d d p / D p d d p p m /n D p p m / d P m \ g r g /m / P m \ G R s p \M \ G r g m p d n ṡ n / ṙ ġ n ṡ n /r ṡ r s N d p n ṡ ṙ Ṡ ṡ m p d P p g r s R r n: s r g m p d n ṡ ṙ ṡ n d n D p p m ṡ n n D p M d p m G r s / n n d r ṙ ṡ N vi ja yā naṁ da mu 1327

93 s r S R g m r R /g / m p p / ṗ d p m 2 r ma na sā raṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ga nu nē lu d p P m kō \r g m r s rā yi ka ṇ s R g g m P p /d n n / ṡ d p m r g m r s ma di tā ḷa du ni kke mu ga rā svaram / n D m / P M p m \G m p d N ṡ ṙ ṡ n Ṡ ṡ d p m P p S r d / m D p \M d P m r g r s ( maditāḷadunikkemukadarā) s 2 S n ṇ Ṇ p. Ṇ va na jā P S m D r s r s S m g / M /P na na nī kē M.n P m m G r r s S s Ṇ p. S Ṇ dā ra S m D r s R s S ya nu cu 1328

94 m G / M /P S ṡ n ṡ n N va la ci yā a na ṁ Ṡ ṡ n / ġ ṙ s S s /Ṡ \n /ṡ N p P m g g m p m G r s R s ṁ ga nu nē ni ḍu va cci ti svaram S / m g r S s s Ṇ \P. ṇ s n N s / m g r s r\s m G m P g m P n P N / Ṡ n p m g m /P \M g r r s S s Ṇ p. S Ṇ dā ra S m D r s R s S ma nu cu m G / M /S p ṡ n ṡ n N va la ci yā a na ṁ Ṡ s n / ġ r s S s /Ṡ \n / ẇ s N p P m g g m p m G r s R s ṁ ga nu nē ni ḍu va cci ti 24. s s Ḍ S s r ma na vi de li /G g r g p g P pi ra ṁ mme na 1329

95 p g G p na va mō d Ṡ s d \p ha na p d /r s d D ṡ d p g p g p d ṙ ṡ d p d d p p g r s mai na vī ra vi kra ma ja ya śū ra svaram s /D \G / P /R s r g D g d p D d g p g P p r g /d p d /g r \S s d /r s \ D p ( vikarama jayaśūra) g r s/ p g r / d p g / ẇ s d p / r s d s muktāyi svaram s D S s r G r g P g r / G / d p d \G / p g r / G r s s r s / G r g p g / D p g r s r G g P p D d P d p g p d /g r s S d d p P / ṡ r p g r s nāṭa 1330

96 s s r \S s caraṇam P m P m g M g G /p p haṁ bī ru la p /n d p m p m me p m p G m cca du dhai G m g / p m g m R ṇ s r s ṇ s rya ṁ bu na s s s /G / s G p m p d a ti va na ḍu p m p / D mu siṁ d Ṙ S S n ṡ d la ṁha lī p m g m p d p m g R s ya na ta gu svaram p m g p \R s s p \G m p d \P / n D p ( siṁhalīlayanatagu) 1331

97 26. s s r biṁ bā G M m /d p m g g r g r s s dha ri sa ha na kṣi ti s / r ṇ / s ṇ d S Ṡ ke na yu gu prē n n d n d p m p p p / n d p m g r g r s n s ma ga la di ra ti yu pa ri kra ma mu na svaram R G M G R N S R /P m\g r n s r g m p / N d p m G R s S ṡ pre n n d n d p m p p p / n d p m g r g r s n s ma ga la di ra ti yu pa ri kra ma mu na 1332

98 27. s r m p d p /d \ ṃ g \r r n S / g r ṇ ḍ p ṇ s r / s M p d p p /d p m. tu ṁ bu ru vī ṇa nu pa li ke gau ḷi pa ṁ m p d p d p m m P d p n ṡ n ṡ R Ṡ s ṙ \n tu rī ti śa ku na mu yi di saṁ d m m p d n p m p m g r / g r s pa dvē ṣṭa mu svaram S ṇ Ḍ p n s r / p M p d p n ṡ. n ṡ r Ṡ r d p m p d / M g r s r m p d p p / d p m pa li ke gau ḷi pa ṁ m p d p d p m m P d p n ṡ n ṡ R Ṡ s ṙ \n d m p m p m g r g r s tu rī ti śa ku na mu yi di saṁ pa dvē ṣṭa mu 28. P d p n ḋ d p aṁ bu ja m m g r g m P mu khi jhaṁ ṁ M g r kā ra r g m g r R bhra ma ri ki 1333

99 S S P P na ḷu ku cu n d m p d d *ṡ s ni ṁ nu sa ma n d m p ra tu la ku M p m g r s raṁ ṁ mme na svaram S S p d P / n d d p M P m G r m p n D m p d ṡ s n d m p ra tu la ku M p m g r s raṁ mme na muktāyi svaram S s r R r g g r p m g r r s ṡ P d P n d d P M g m p n d m p d d Ṡ ṡ P sa n d m p m g r s nāṭa s s r \S s caraṇam

100 29. Ṇ Ḍ / s Ṇ S G R r g r S po ga ḍi ka mī rī ṇ s g r G M m p m g m p m g r S ti gau la vi pru la S M g g m p m g r g m p m g r S pū ji ṁ cu ne ppu ḍu m / N d n D m M siṁ mha vi g r g / p m g r S kra ma svaram S N s g r g m / p m g r S p m m \ G r m g g R s / r s s n s M g g m ṇ S ṇ ṇ S g g m g m n D m g m p M G R ṇ M g g m p m pū ji ṁ g r g m / p m g r P m /N d n d \m M g r g p m g r S cu ne ppu ḍu si mha vi kra ma 30. s ḍ s s S R na gu na ṭa nā r / m g r g R s s r r p M m G ṙ / g R s rā ỵa ṇi ya nu nā 1335

101 r / g r s r M g r / g ma mu dā mu gu S ṡ ṡ ṡ m p / d p m g g r s R S r m R s Ṡ dā ca tu rmu khu ni rā ṇi rā svaram P P d p m g r gbs R \Ḍ S r /m g r s r \S r / M m \G g r r / m m g g r r s s / S S s S P d p m G g \R s r s Ṡ ca tu rmu khu ni rā ṇi rā S ṡ ṡ ṡ m p / d p m g g r s R S 3 G /d p m g \R r / m g r / m g r s s ṇ ṇ d D mi gu la jaṁ tra gā tram S r r / m G s r g bi la ha ri P P ma di me cca p m g p d D ẇ s N n ṡ d d / n p p / d m m g g P / d d / ṡ n d /n d P p m g p g R s jē yu śrī naṁ da na vi na rā 1336

102 svaram D P m G \R s r g P m G \ R s/ g \R S s / r s ṇ ḍ d / r s r d /g r g g /d p d m g p d /Ġ \R ṡ n d / Ṡ p d p m g / p g R s \P m g r \S d r s r g p / d m m g g P D d ṡ n d /n d P śrī naṁ da na vi na rā 3 ṇ ḍ ṇ ḍ ma gu va ja Ḍ \ Ṃ ḍā hiṁ / Ṇ ḍ ṇ dō ḷa S ṇ g S rā ji vi ṣa s m m g g ma ṁ ba gu m g g m va ha na m g m m g s mai na ba hu s ṇ ḍ ṇ S vi dha mu la svaram S g \S ṇ ḍ ṇ S s ṇ ḍ ḍ ṃ / N D n / S s Ṇ s m g g m m m g s 1337

103 n d n n / ṇ S m \G m /n S g ṡ n d m [m g s [ba hu s n d n S vi dha mu la muktāyi svaram S m g s s eye s g \S ṇ ḍ ṇs s ṇ ṇ Ḍ d n d d \M m n n d n s n n s n n n d n S ṡ m g g m g m m / n ṡ /ġ ṡ S ṡ n n d \M m m / n d m m m g s (nāṭa) s s r \S s caraṇam 7. 3 S s m g m P d D d n d p p m p D d d n d p m /d p lē ma vē ga vā hi nai naṁ tṙ ṇa lī la dā ḍu la gu 1338

104 p m g g m p śē kha ra s r s la la svaram S s M m g m p D d n d P n d d d m d P p p m g M p d n S P m d p s n D p la gu p m g \R lī 34. r r S ṇ ḍ ṇ s sō mu r s r /g /M ka ḍu va p m g \R lī p m g g m p śē kha ra s r s la la ṇ ḍ ṇ s /r r S kā ka M g g m / n d m g g g m / p m g m g r s s saṁ ṁ ta bhai ra vi jū M M g g M m n n d d / n d d n ṡ ci na ṭu la rā 1339

105 s ṙ ṡ n d \M p m g g g m / p m g \r S va aṁ ta ni bhā svaram R S / r r s r g m \ G m n d / n n d / n d m g g m g m / n m g r s ṇ \Ḍ n S / r r S r g m \G M n n \D n n Ṡ ṡ S s n d \M \G m / n m g r s S jū M M g g M m n n d m n d d n ṡ ci na ṭu rā s ṙ ṡ n d \M p m g g g m / p m g r S va sa ṁ ta ni bā 35. S s r ā a a r s ṇ ḍ p. myā ca p. ḍ p. ṇ p. ḍ bau ḷi p ṇ ḍ ḍ p g... rā ga ṃ g. /P. ḍ /r ṡ n s bhā va mu la S r G na ṁ ṁ 1340

106 g p p p da me ri gi d p P d ṡ n d p p m / p g g /P m g g r s va na mā li ni po ga ḍu nu svaram P / d p m \G d p m \G \R g g p m g. P S / R G P / D P / d m g P d p d S d /Ṡ n d p r /n \ D P m G d p P d ṡ n d p p m / p g g /P m g va na mā li ni po ga ḍu nu m g r s 36. R S r ṇ ḍ s mā mu gu da R r s s r G r g s / ma na sā R d p d p m g r /g r s s r / p M m P m d p d vē ri ta ru la ma di me cca du 1341

107 p d N d n n d p / n d m p d n G p \ m g r s śrī kī rti ni dā na svaram / r n d / g r s r m g r m p d / ṡ n d / ṙ n d m / d p/ ṡ n d / ṙ ṡ / ġ r R S / ẇ r ṡ n D / ṙ s n \D p / d m p ḋ ġ ṙ ḋ ṙ ṡ d / ṡ n d m g r m (p d N d /n n d p / n d m p d / n G p \ m g r s śrī kī r ti ni dā na muktāyi svaram g r g g r s r s r r s n d /r s r M n G r m p d / n d p / G d / n d p m / n d p m g r s r / g r s r \S g \R p \M d P / n d p d Ṡ n N d d p d / ġ ṙ ġ d /ṙ ṡ ṙ d / S n d p\ M g r s nāṭa 1342

108 s s r \S s s n s m m m r s s P p m m R caraṇam n /S r nā bhi s s r r s Ṇ sa ma mu G n s r / g r g m pu nnā ga r g m g p m g va rā r \n s r ḷi ki na ya g m p / d m p m g r nu gu va lu lu tri d m / p m p D M tī ya p m g r s mu gā svaram Ṇ s r r s G r / M \ G r s ṇ s r g m P m g m M G r 1343

109 m g m n D P M g m p \m G r s r \ Ṇ s r g m P p tri tī m M / d p m g r S ya mu gā 38. S s r s ṇ ḍ Ṇ sā bhi lā /S n d / n d p m /P. ḍ ṣa la paṁ tu / s ṇ ḍ Ṇ ṇ s / r s ṇ va rā le ṁ ca ḍ / ṇ /S S r G p n di rā aṁ ṁ ṁ m p g r s n ta ra d d p m \g m m g \r krī ḍa la gu svaram n S g \R m \G p \M / d p m p g / m p / d m g r / p m g / d p m / n d p / ṡ n d n ṡ / r n d n ṡ n \D p m p m \ G r s r \N (S r G p (a ṁ /d d p m \g m p m g \r krī ḍa la gu nu 1344

110 39. s n d p m g / p M P ī bhū mi kāṁ bhō p m p d / n n d p d m g p d d / ẇ s n \p d ẇ s ṙ ṡ n d ṡ n d \P m g \ r s ja la ḷi ṁ ga mu yi ta ra dē śa mu la na bha ṁ ga ga ri ma nu svaram S \ Ṇ ḍ d p ḍ S r / p M g m p d n d / ẇ g ṙ ġ d n d / ẇ r ṡ ṙ ṡ / ṙ n d / ẇ r Ṡ n d p m G r s r m g p d / ṡ n d \P m g \ r s ga ri ma nu 40. S śrī bhā N S s n S S S R ra ti sa tu R m G r S r S r la ku ra ṁ ṁ s ṇ ṇ ṇ s r S ji ta mu gā s m G m p m p ce lu va la ru P p m p d P m cu ṁ nna di M / ḋ P m g r / m G r pā rva tī n s / g R s da yā 1345

111 S r s s ṇ Ṇ a a svaram S n N S s / m g r s ṇ Ṇ S /p m g \R r / G m / p m g r s / M g G r s ṇ S r S r ra ṁ s ṇ ṇ ṇ s r s S ji ta mu gā s m G ce lu S p m m p m p va la ru cu ṁ p d P m ṁda d i M / d P m g r / m G r pā rva t i ṇ s g R s da yā s r s s ṇ ṇ a a 1346

112 muktāyi svaram S n Ṇ s ṇ s r R s ṇ s R g r S r s ṇ Ṇ s ṇ S r g R g m G r / g r s S s r R r g G g m g r s ṇ s M M / p m g r G G / m g r s p \M p s./ m \Ġ m g r s ṇ s R g G m M p P / d p m p /d \ P m g r s /m g r s ṇ Ṇ nāṭa s s r \S s s n s m m M r s 4 m p g R m r s r g m p m p d n d p / d p m r / g g m r ma da va ti kā pi ru du li su ga ṇ s r g m p m p p ti i i ṁ ne lu m / d m p d n ṡ n ṡ ṡ n r ṡ mā ni ni ka ṁ ṁ 1347

113 d n d n d n d m p d n s n p m p d p g m r s ṙ ṡ n ṁ ṁ ṁ ṭha mu kō ki la pri ya mu svaram r g m R S r g m P m p d n p m P M G g / m R s r ṇ s r g m P m p d n ṡ P n P d n p \ M p d n ṡ n ṡ ṡ n ṡ n ṙ ṡ ṙ ṡ n d n d n d p mā ni ni ka ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ d m p d n ṡ n p m p d p g m r s mu kō ki la pri ya mu 4 ṇ S ṇ n S s s / r ḍ ḍ Ṇ p. ā di nī i i ḍ Ṇ ḍ ṇ S ṇ S s s S g G /m m g g /m m g m / p g / m r ṣ n s s nā a a ku raṁ ṁ ṁ ji la ra ṁ ṁ mme na S /n n D / n ha ṁ ṁ bs P d n ṁ sa 1348

114 Ṡ n / ṡ n d n /s d p d n ṡ n s R ṡ n /ṡ s n d / n d p d n n / ṡ d p m g m / p g / m r r g \Ṗ nā a a a a a da mu na ba li ke nu rā a svaram \M g \S s ṇ s /r \ S ṇ ḍ ṇ s /r / g M /p \M g / m m g \P r g m / n D n ṡ n /ṙ \S n /ṡ n n d n s n n D m m p m G \P / r r s P /n n D n haṁ \P d n ṁ sa Ṡ n / s n d s / p d p d n ṡ n ẇ s r ṡ n / ṡ s n nā da mu na ba li d / n d p d n n / ṡ d p m g m / p g / m r r g \P ke nu rā S s r 4 s ṇ ḍ d s sa da ya śu ka / m m P p m p / n d p pi ka mu khā ri M N n d D /Ṡ ṡ \n n d D ba la ma ni ci sā re sā re p p m p d p m g r r 1349

115 D / ṙ s n d P / n d m P / d m m p p m G r s ka ṁ da rpu ḍē cu ṭa ku svaram r P m g r r m m g r \S r m p /n n d P m / n n d Ṡ ṡ ṙ / ġ ṡ ṙ g ṙ S n d P m g r S r m p N N n d d /Ṡ s \n n d d sā re sā re D / ṙ s n d P / n d m P / d m m / d p m g r s kaṁ ṁ da rpu ḍē cu ṭa ku 44. g /p p \r g g m r s be da ri ya mu na ḍu la m g p d / ṡ d /ṙ Ṡ /ṙ n p d d / n p m p m g / d p m g R bi tta r śrī ra ṁ ga raṁ ga ya ya nu cu svaram s /p \G R s S ḍ S r r g ṇ s /r s ṇ ḍ / g r / g g r g \r r jū cu ṭē mē ra 1350

116 /p G r G / d P g R d s r g p \G d \P s d / (Ṡ r n ṡ d d / n p m p m g /d p m g R (śrī raṁ ga raṁ ga ya ya nu cu muktāyi svaram G R s r s n D s p. ḍ S R G P \R G r g p g P p g D P m g r G g p d ṡ p /d \P g R s nāṭa s s r \S s s ḋ p m mmr s 45. P P P/ n P m / p M g g m m / n m g m p m g r s s / r S ṇ Ṇ bhō gā naṁ da bhai ra vi pu ra ha ra S g r pū / G M P ji ta pra P n D p / n P m \ g m P S ẇ r ṡ n d p /d P m m g m P p m tā pa śē kha ra lī 1351

117 g m p m \ g r \ G p m g r s la ye la svaram Ṇ S ṇ ṇ s G r G m p m P Ṡ n d \M / P g r \ N S g g m (P p m lī g m p m g r / G p m g r s la ye la ḍ 46. r S s r nā ga n ṇ ḍ p. ḍ p p. ṃ p. Ḍ. nī du da ru bā ru ṇ s s \ ṇ r s g g r s n s r s / m r / p m p d p d / n d n n s p d \m g g r s gā ci na di na ya mu nna rā ga va rddha na mu gā svaram Ṇ S \ r ṇ ḍ ṃ P. ḍ ṇ P r g m P ṙṙ ṡ N D p m d p p D n ṡ ṙ 1352

118 d d d ṡ d \m g g r s [ g g m r s ṇ s r s / m r / p m m d p d / n d na ya mu na rā ga va rddha na mu gā 47. S s /N d P d p M g vē r G \ R g r m p m r / n d ga su ra ṭi ni P / d p M g m p m g \r R p d m p M n d p ya ṁ da la mu na na pi rā P / n \m p / N ṡ ṡ va ccu n ṡ ṙ Ṡ n ṡ ṙ ġ ṙ ṡ ṙ ṡ s n N n d p m p m g p m m g r s ni ṭa ku la li ta pri ya ya na ta gu svaram R S r s Ṇ. \ N s R \p M \ g \ R s n s r M \ g \R m p / n p. ṃ p. ṇ s r / M Ṅ d P / d m p / s N n /ṙ ṡ ṙ ṡ N D p N n Ṡ ṡ m p S r n d p 1353

119 n ṡ ṙ ṡ ṙ ṡ s n N n d p m p m g p m m g r s la li ta pri ya ya na ta gu 48. r s p m s P d p m p g r g r r / g r / G r r s nā ga rī ka va ga lu nā ya ki s n r s R s s ṇ s S Ṡ s ṙ ṙ ṡ ṙ ṡ ṙ ṗ ṁ ṙ ġ / m r s bhā va mu nā ṇya me ra yu śrī ma n / s d p d p /ṙ s p /d m p r / g. r s tkī rti yē ca ku svaram \N r s r N / s n s r / G m p \M / d p m G R s (s ṇ r s R s s ṇ s S Ṡ s ṙ ṙ s ṙ ṡ ṙ /ṗ ṁ ṙ ġ / m ṙ ṡ (bhā va mu nā ṇya me ra yu śrī ma n / ṡ d p d p /ṙ ṡ p / d m p r / g r s. tkī rti yē ca ku muktāyi svaram R S r n s R p m P m p d P / d m p G r p G r s d d p d /M p p m 1354

120 p \R G m P m G G r \S R s n s s /S ṡ ṙ ṡ n ṡ d p m p g R s nāṭa s s r \S s m n s m mm r s caraṇam r \Ṇ S ma ru ni kē R R / m G r R G r s s n / s ṇ s r / g r s ṇ ḍ p. dā ra gau ḷa ta p ṃ p. ṇ s. kka ni dhi r g \ R p m ma di da p M P P p ṡ n D d ṇ P p p m p / ṇ d p m g r r g r S laṁ cu ka nī rā ka vi lō ki ta svaram s r / mm g r \S / R m p n d P 1355

121 m g r s / g r S ṇ ḍ p. ṇ S r m g r M p n d m P n Ṡ ṙ r ġ ṙ ṡ s n d p / d m P m g r / ( p da m p M P P p ṡ \ n D d n P p p m p / n d p m g r r g r S laṁ cu ka nī rā ka vi lō ki ta 50. / g s s \ ṇ p /d g g /M g g ri ma g na ka nī G m p m /p p \ M lā / p m g g m g m m m p / ṡ N p / n p m / p m g ṁ ba ri yai na ti g g m p d / n d / n p p \m m g m P m g r r / m G \S ka ru ṇa ne na ya mu mu ku ṁ da sa mā svaram =uls N s / g G m g m M P / n p m M G m p p m m g m g G S / g g m m / n m g G m P n d n p S n p m m g m P m g r r / m \G S mu ku ṁ da sa mā 1356

122 5 r r M G r r na ra nā rā ya ṇa r g r s ṇ ḍ p \Ṃ. P. ṇ Ḍ ṇ ṇ s gau la ma nu cu kṙ ṣṇā vbhi dhā na na ki r M p d la rā ja svaram M / P P D \M p m g r r g r / p m g \R / p m g r g r S ni gi \ m g r g r s vi dya la S ṇ ṇ S s ṇ ḍ \M p. (s ṇ ḍ ṇ *s r m m la rā ja 5 mbs R / p M P D D p P p m p me ra yu cu ba la mu na p d \ m g r g r s vi dya la s p d D p ba la / d P m / p M r dē / d P m /d d Ṡ D /r Ṡ ṡ d /ṡ d p d p m mī ru ca tu rda śi khā R r d va kri ya 1357

123 m / p m p d /ṡ ma ṇi d p p d p ka nu m p m r s mi dē svaram / m r s / p mr S / d d p / ṡ d p D / ẇ r ṡ d / ẇ s d p m p / p d p m r s r m p m / p m p d /ṡ ma ṇi d p p d p ka nu m p m r s mi de muktāyi svaram R p m p \R m r m\r s r r M m P p d d S d p m p d /Ṡ \P d /ṙ ṡ D p p m /d p ṡ D p p m r s nāṭa 1358

124 s s r \S s s n s m m m r s caraṇam 1 5 S G G g r g kaṁ nya ye na m m / d p m p M / p g r G su vra ta ṁ ṁ bē / p M p m P P ya kō ri n M p ga ḍa pu m P g g / d p m m p g r S ku ḍu ṡ ba mu gā svaram M G m P / d p /n n d n Ṡ ṙ n ṡ d p /n n cu ṁ nna di p n ṡ \G m P / p N p D p m G r s G m p n 54. ḍ /S n Ṡ m G r R ṇ / r s n ce nnu gā yi cca ṭi ki d p m m p g r S ku ṭuṁ ba mu gā s S /G r G g /m G r / 1359

125 s ṇ ḍ Ḍ ṇ R ṇ ḍ d /ṇ \d P ḍ n ḍ / na va rō ju la lō ce / s Ṇ S r G m g R S ṇ ḍ ṇ ṇ \P. ḍ g r G r R. lu va vi ja ya maṁ da gā da la ci svaram ḍ ṇ ḍ ṇ s N ḍ ṇ ḍ ṛ /Ṣ ṇ ḍ / g \R S ṇ / Ḍ ṇ s r /g \ R r S sṇ d s Ṇ ṇ Ḍ ḍ ṇ : \P. ḍ Ṇ s R g /m g r s n ḍ ṇ s r g \R S ṇ ḍ ṇ / s Ṇ Ḍ p ( d. ce / s Ṇ S r G m g R S n ḍ ṇ \P. ḍ g r G r R. lu va vi ja ya ma ṁ da gā da la ci 55. S r s ḍ n ḍ / ṇ ḍ yu nna di ga ma ka p d s r g r G kri ya va da la ka tā g m m g m p d ṡ \n nu ṁ nna ti ma ru ni tu d /n d \ m G g / m g r s raṁ ga lī la ya na svaram S r G m m g m p d Ṡ 1360

126 ṡ n d D m \ G g /m g s lī la ya na s 56. n s s n n R S n ni ṁ nnē yā ṇ ḍ ḍ ṇ Ḍ p P /n / n s ha ri gā ma di s /M g \r r S S ne ṁ vu vu nī M / d P \ g m p p d tu a dha ra / n d d p p ṡ \n n D p / d P \g g M g \R ma ka ra ṁ ṁ daṁ bā na ga R s r s svaram \N S / r r s ṇ m \ G r g m m P /d d p m p M \G m / n \D P m p d / s N Ṡ / ṙ rs n /ṙ ṡ n Ṡ n \D p m p p d a dha ra / n d d p p ṡ \n n D p / d P \g g M g \R ma ka ra ṁ ṁ da ṁ bā na ga R s / r s muktāyi svaram 1361

127 R S/ r s n S \n \D p d / s Ṇ s r s m \ G r S m g m p /d \P p \ G m p m n \D p m g m p d /n /Ṡ / ṙ r ṡ ṁ \ G ṙ ṡ s / ṙ ṡ n \ D P m g m / G r S Ṡ n \D p m p \G m g r s nāṭa s s r \S s s n s m m m r s caraṇam S r G G p D p p p mu ddu p D p p D p p p / d p p g kṙ ṣṇa g p G bhū g r /g G p pā P d p / d p P d Ṡ p D p p G d p p g r / g R S P P P / la naṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ da na svaram 1362

128 /g g r / g g r r r s / r r s / g r g p / d p g r s / p g r s / g r S r g p / d p d Ṡ d d p P g r s r g / (p pā P d p /d p P d Ṡ p /D p p G d p p g r /g r r S P P P / la naṁ ṁ ṁ da na 58. p d d p m g m / d p m / p m g m g r /g r r s mu di ta mā ḷa va gau ḷa ṇ ḍ ṇ s /r r S ma rā ṭu lu s r g m P d m p g m p d n d n ṡ o ddi ka rā ja ba ṁ gā ḷa n d p m dha rā g r S dhi pu lu svaram d d p p m g m g r S R g m p / P m G m p d P m G m p d Ṡ n Ḋ n ṡ ṙ Ṡ n d p m P m g r S r g m P / d m p g m p d n d n ṡ rā ja ba ṁ gā ḷa 1363

129 n d p m dha rā g r S dhi pu lu 59. N D / N S R r g r r S R M P n d p M / d p m g R S u ci ta sai ṁ ṁ da vi ya na di vi ya kṣa ra svaram Ṇ Ḍ ṇ S r M g G r s r M P / d d p m P p m g r s (R M P d p M / d p m g R S ya na di vi ya kṣa ra G g p P G p D p P d N d D p P d n D p d d p p d p p m mu ddi ya ra hi gā ṁ cu rā ma ka li \ G g /d p d p p m g / m g p d /ṡ n ṡ R ṡ Ṙ ṡ S n \d d p P d N d d p m g / m g r s ki ni mu da mu ve la yu ka la si gā ra vi ṁ śu svaram P / d p m \G / d p m \G p d Ṡ n d p G r s r G (P d N d d p m g / m g \r s gā ra vi ṁ cu 6 S / N d P /d p m g r g m g \r r S S s s / g r s R s s r s s n \ḍ ḍ ḍ si ddha mu dē va gāṁ dhā ri ni po ṁ du śrī 1364

130 / ṇ d s r m s r s r m p p d / ṡ n \d d n S / ṙ s n ṡ D G n d P m g R ka ra vē ṁ ka ṭa kṙ ṣṇa va jī rā svaram R s r s n : \D : S r s r / s M p m p / n D D P m g r m p / r S ṡ p m / d P p ṡ d / ṙ Ṡ s d /ṙ ṡ n \ D d / ṡ n \ D D p \M (p d \ ṡ n \d d n Ṡ s ṙ ṡ n ṡ D D n d P m g R vē ṁ ka ṭa kṙ ṣṇa va jī rā muktāyi svaram d d p P p m g r R r s r s s \D P r m p / D d p m p d p d p M m / d p M M / p m g \R r m p D d m / d D d p d S ṡ d ṡ R r s r m G r m ġ R s r g \R r d\d d / S d p m g r s nāṭa s s r \S s s ṇ p m m m r s s P p m m R r s m r s p m n P M p m m r \S r g m p d n s s n p \M m r \nāṭakādi vidyala balumēṭi vadhūṭiyaura 1365

131 In this Rāga tāḷa mālikā, since e are unable to obtain the precise aṅgams of the tāḷas lali, lakṣaṇa, śrīmat kīrti, akṣara, kala and śrī, e have printed the verbatim version of thendhātu, mātu appearing against the names of these five tāḷas. Since the phrase nāṭakādi is specifies in the very first dhātu of this rāgatālamālikā, and since it is required to sing the mātus of all the rāgas and tāḷas in ādi tāḷa, for these aforementioned five tāḷas, it should be rendered in ādi tāḷa, even though the ending gītas of the various aṅgas are not specified. We have been making enquiries regarding these five tāḷas. If they are available, e shall print them as an Appendix later. 1366

132 A.13 rāgamālikā rūpaka tāḷa Subbarāma Dīkṣita G vē m p m /P ḍu ka tō d n S ka n d p m g r lyā ṇi r g vē r r \ṇ r g m P d ga mē ni nu m / p g ra ṁ r s R ma ne ā svara sāhityam / G r s sā ra sā s ṇ \ Ḍ ṇ S r kṣa cā ru pā da /G m p sā ra saṁ p d / N d m g r be kō ri na di rā r g vē r R ga rā r n tō d p \ g m ḍi ce li mi m d sē / ṡ n ṡ n d n s ṡ ya rā dā s p to d ṙ n / ṡ yya li n d p d pai n s n d nī p m m p m g r s vā dā svara sāhityam g m p d ni ra ta mu n ṡ n / ġ ṙ n d n ni nu ma ru va na ne ra ṡ ṙ Ṡ ne Ra naṁ n d m g r ṇ g r mmi da la ci ko li ci bi g m lu cu p d to n g r s yya dā s ṡ ṙ s vā n d p M / d p m g ḍi na mo ga ṁ g r / g s bhai r g m g m m ra vi jū ḍa ni m p m p p d / n ṡ / ġ dmi ni va le ṙ ṡ n d p nu ṁ m /d p m g g r g s nna di rā 1367

133 svara sāhityam / N d mā rā D \M / n d \ M mā ma ṇi mā / p m g r ru yi la lō ṇ p g r ve da ki te g m p d do ra ka du m P d m rā ḷa n s ṙ ġ / ṁ ṙ / ġ s ga ma na mṙ du va ca na ṡ n d p yu ṁ m /d p m g r s nna di rā 4. r mō p p m m p ḍi vī ḍa p m p sā D n Ṡ ṙ n d p m ra ṁ ṁ ga m p d mu di / n ṡ ṙ / ġ r ta mō vi ṡ n d p yā p m r g m r s na ra svara sāhityam n \S mu dā p spa \M d \P ṡ \N dā sa dā ma dā ṙ \Ṡ / ġ \ ḷi dā ya Ṙ ṡ n \ D p dā ḍi ki bi ti llu p m p /d mu di / n g m r s ta na ra s 5. g ī g /d p g r s du lē ni s g mō p d ṡ p d ṡ s ha nā ṁ ga s s d yē /ġ r ṡ p d Ṡ la ra śrī /ṙ ṡ d p rā ja g /d p g r s gō pā la svara sāhityam / G r s gō ku lēṁ s s / d d p G p dra su gu ṇa sāṁ dra d /g r p va da na caṁ s d g / d p G r ṁ dra nu ta kavīṁdra r ṡ d yē /g r ṡ g /d p g r s la ra gō pā la 5. g /d p g ka la ka va r s d r s r /G da la pa lu ku mu rā 1368

134 4. p m r g m ga nu ḍa ni r s s p m p / n D ni nu po ga ḍu nu rā n n ṅ n sa la li ta M d p m g r g / p gu ṇā ka rā g m p d ca nu vu na n ṡ n ġ r n D ga yi kō rā /S n d cā la da p m g /m \ G r s la ci ta mī yū ri kō s r r g vē m p m P ḍu ka tō According to the āvarōhaṇa kramam, the sāhityam alone should bre sung. A.14 rāgamālikā tiśra jāti ēka tāḷa Subbarāma Dīkṣita pallavi g /d p \r G / ṗ g r s pri ya mu nā ya me ḍ p g \r r / g r /g g. kō ri va cci ti svara sāhityam g p d /r \ S n d p m g r sa ra sa ku rā va sa ra sa mu na m g m d n S n d d / n prē ma tō ḍi ka d m m g / m g r s nē lu mu ra svara sāhityam ḍ ṇ g r g m d n / ṡ n d m ni ra ta mu sa ta ta mu ne na ru na anupallavi 1369

135 p m r g r s ṇ s r ja ya pa ti śrī vē r m p n p / n ṡ ṁ ka ṭa gi ri pa ti svara sāhityam p m r / n p m ṡ n / ġ r s n sa ka la vi bu dha vi nu ta ca ri ta 4. ġ ṙ G ṗ g ṙ ṡ /g r ṡ sā rva bhau ma n d p m g / m g / m r s ha ṁ ṁ vī ra svara sāhityam s s /p p / d p /ṡ s Ġ m ṙ ṡ sa ra gu na va la pu na ba la ka ra sārvabhauma haṁvīra munayamē kōrivacciti priya caraṇam 5. R / g r s ṇ s r s r n d va ta pai nī / s d \m g g m r s da ru bā rā svara sāhityam n s r p /M d m G m r s ca la mi ka va ddu ra ta dga yu 6. r m r m P d p m va cci kā pā ḍi na ṡ n p d p d sa ti ya di rā svara sāhityam R m p d p Ṡ p. d p m śrī dha ra ma dhu rā dha ra ya ni 1370

136 7. p / s n ḋ ṁ p / s n D n ca na vu ba hu śā ṡ ṡ \ n d p \m m ni tya mu ga svara sāhityam p m g r S r g m p \M mu ra ha ra sā ma ja va ra dā 8. r r r g m p m ca kka na sa ha na / n d p m g g r / g r nu ṁ cu mu rā svara sāhityam s s ṙ ṙ ġ /ṁ ġ ṙ ġ ṙ ṡ n i la ni lu ka ḍa ya gu ka li mi ni ṡ ṡ r ) ca kka na ) 9. p \g p /d \g p p va na ja nā bha &\g p /d \g P d ṡ ṡ mō ha nāṁ ṁ ga svara sāhityam /Ġ ṙ Ṡ ḋ / ṙ ṙ ṡ d p g gā na lō la su gu ṇa śī la 10. /ġ \ṙ ṡ \p /d d p vā tu tu lē la g g \r g / d p g r s śrī bhū pā la svara sāhityam /r r s d S / d p /ṡ d p g sa ma ya mu rā kṙ pa sa lu pa ga vādulēla śrībhūpāla priyamunayamē kōrivacciti prēmatōḍikanēlumurā 1371

137 A.15 rāgāṅga rāgamālikā rūpaka tāḷam (mātu) kṙṣṇa kavi (dhātu) Subbarāma Dīkṣita pallavi s r / g r M p m ī ka na kā \ g r s r ṁ ba ri r s ṇ ḍ ne na yu mu p ḍ s r / p m p / d p. yi ṁ pu mī ra mṙ du \m \ g r r ma dhu ha ra S s r sa na nu svaram p m \ s s r r m \ g r r m p D / n d p d Ṡ / ṙ ṡ \ n d p G r S \ n ḍ p ḍ S r. d p r M p d / n mṙ du \m \ g r r ma dhu ha ra s r s r sa na na nu m g g r M P ślō ka phē na / d p m / p dyu ti ve la m g r s r / p m sē ṭi p d p n n ṡ s n ślō bha nā ṁ gi ni p d p m hau su mī g g r / g g r s ra gā svaram 1372

138 p. ḍ p. ṇ ṇ s / g r s r / p m / p g r s r r m m p d d p n n Ṡ n d p m g R s ṇ S r m p d P m p n hausumīragā eḍuppu svaram (phēnadyuti) S ṇ s \P. ḍ p. ṇ ṇ S g r / g s r M / p g r \S r m m / D p m p (gānasāmavarāḷi) m G r m P d p d n Ṡ / r ṡ n d P n d p M g r / g S r g r M m \ G r s /r rā ka gō ri na di / G r s gā na sā r g s r m m ma va m g r s r m p d n s rā ḷiku ṁ d P m ta ḷī va \ g r s r da na ji ta svaram m m g r s r s ṇ ḍ ḍ p ḍ n s r s r / g s r r m m p / d p m m g r / p m 1373

139 m g r s r /p( p m P d P d n r S n d p p m (va m g r s da na ji ta m p m r r g \S rā ka śī ta bhā r m p n nu ma ti maṁ d p d m ṁ tu m P n n ṡ n d rā lu nī p /d m ke na gā g g r s bō lu svaram ṇ Ḍ ṇ s r r g \d R s r M p d p d m p S n d n d P m g g r S r m p d P m m p (nīkenagābōlu) p d p m r g r s / r s prā ka ṭa mu ga ma nō r m p d n bf ra ṁ ja ni n d ṡ s gā ma di / r ṡ n d p / d p m bhā vi ṁ ci lā li ṁ \ g r / g s ci da ya N s r m mī ra ga svaram P m r g r S ṇ ḍ ṇ s r G M P p r g r / g s / r s r m p d 1374

140 d S s ṙ /ġ g ṙ r Ṡ n d n d p p M r (dayamīraga) 6. s n d n \P p m lō ka me lla p n / ko ni yā n \ d n p ḍa ra ti g g r m P m n lō lu pa cē ta nu \ d n /ṙ ṡ kī rti n \ d n p ve la ya ga svaram p p m g r /g g r\s /r r s /r r m P /n n Ṡ /r r /Ġ g ṙ r Ṡ n d n p m g r s r M p (tanukīrti velayaga) muktāyi svaram m \G g r s r m \ G r s r S s ṇ ḍ ṇ P. p. p. ṇ s r r[r / g g r r m P m n d n P p n ṡ ṙ Ṡ s n d n P p m g r S r /G g r (kanaāṁbari) 1375

141 s s r M g r s ṇ ḍ p. Ḍ ṇ ḍ p. ḍ S r r M p p D / n d p d s ṙ ṁ \Ġ ṙ ṡ n d p d / n d p m \ G r s r m p d Ṡ n d P m \ G r caraṇam (phēmadyuti eḍuppu svaram) S n s \P. ḍ ṇ ṇ ṇ S S r m p / D p m p (sēnāgraṇi) m g R m p n d p m g m p /s S n D p m g m g r ṇ ḍ D r g m / 7. m g r S r ġ r m ma ru ni sē nā d p / d gra ṇi ya m p / n d gu ma la ya s \ n d p m / d p g mā ru ta mu la m g r s vē ḍi ṇ ḍ p. s kō rva ga svaram m g R g m p d r g r S r g r m g m p d p n d S \ n d p m g m 1376

142 8. (mārutamula vēṭikōrvaga) s r g M d m g m sa ra si jā d m d n d kṣi ta na du pri m p d n ya sa gi ni S ġ ṙ ṡ ṙ 9. d n s n S ja na tō ṡ n d p d n ḍi teṁ mma ni d m /p m g ba nu pa ga svaram r g m p d n ṡ ṙ / Ġ ṙ ṡ n / Ġ ṙ \ N d /N d \M g r ṇ G g m d m d n (tōḍitemmanibanukaga) s r s g g s r g. sa ra s ga ti si dva ni m G m bhi nna p d N ṣa dja ṡ n d m p g M sva ra mu vi ṁ nna nā g R g ga ka nya / d p g s r ka va le nē svaram g r ṣ ṇ ḍ pp. ḍ p : d : ṇ s ḍ gg r g s r g m p d n d g p g r g m p 1377

143 D / Ġ r Ṡ ṙ ṡ n d p (nāgakanyakavalene) 10. s g m P m g r ta ru ṇi yuṁ nna di na R m p ṭā bha ra n d n p ṇa ma ṇi ga n d n ṡ ġ r ṡ n dā ni D / n p / n p p m ne ṁ nna g g R ta gu nu svaram s g M p m g r r m Ṗ n d n p n n Ṡ / ṙ ṡ n d d n S/ n p p m g r S r s n : d : n : p : n: s r m p n (nennatagunu) 1 s r p m g r s r ka ru ṇa sē yu ma di M p d n kō ki s n d p m lā ra va P p m g r s ṇ ḍ ṇ kā ka li dhva ni ṇ g r g g r r tā ḷa s p m g r m jā la du svaram m g r p m g r s ṇ ḍ p. ḍ S r s r g r m p m p d d n Ṡ ṙ ṡ n d 1378

144 p M g r s Ṇ ḍ p. ḍ Ṇ s g r (tāḷajāladu) 1 p m g s r m p n mē ru dhī ra ya p p p m ti śu bha ka g s ṇ ḍ ṇ p. ra ṁ bu ga S r m g m p ṡ ṙ mē lu tō ḍa ba lu ṁ ġ ṡ ṡ n d n mē ṭi rū p m g s pa va ti svaram r m g s ṇ ḍṇ p. s r g s r r m s r m m p p S n d n p M m g s R M p m p p Ṡ n d N p (mēṭi rūpavati) muktāyi svaram g S ṇ ḍ ṇ p S r S m g m s p m n p m p N d p m n Ṡ n p m G G s p m g s m P ṡ ṙ /g G / ṁ g Ṡ ṙ /m G ṡ n \ d n p m (kanakāṁbari) 1379

145 s s r M g r s ṇ ḍ p. Ḍ ṇ ḍ p. d S r r M p p D / n d p d ṡ ṙ ṁ \ G ṙ ṡ n d p d n d p m \ G r s r m p d S n d P m G r ī kana caraṇam 1 g m g r s r m g m p gē ya he jja jji pri ya / N d p ni ṁ mmu M g m naṁ mmi na g r m g m p d \ n d p kī ra vā ṇi ni / d p m g ka ru ṇa lē ga nē svaram m p d / n d p m g r s \ṇ ḍ Ṣ r s r m g r s r m g m p d Ṡ ṙ ṡ n d p / D p m g r S r m g m p (karuṇalēkanē) 14. r r s ṇ ḍ \Ṃ ṇ vā yu va saṁ ta Ḍ Ṇ s bf bhai ra vaṁ s /r r s bu ga 1380

146 r g m g m / p m g vā ḍi pā lu ga m /N d sē ya m g m / p m g bū nu ṭa svaram m g r r sd n D d n s / r r \S / r s r g M m / N n d m / p m G m d n Ṡ n d m g M / p m g r s r g ( sēyubūnuṭa) 15. M /p m m g M d p mā yā mā ḷa va \g m p / d m gau ḷa g r s ṇ s dē śa pu m g r s r g m p d n mā na vu la ka di d /ṙ ṡ n ṡ n sa ha ja d /ṡnd p m g kṙ tya mu svaram G m p d p m g \R s ṇ ḍ ṇ s r S r g M d p m g n d p m ṡ n d n d P m g M g r g m p d n (sahajahṙdayamu) 16. r s m g m p d / n pri ya mu ga na di ta pō d P m vē ga g m p d d n vā hi ni 1381

147 /ṙ ṡ n D n d p pe ṁ pu gā na va g m p d n d d p gā ha m g \r s mā ḍi svaram r S ṇ ḍ ṇ s R s m g m p d n d p m g r r s r s g M p D n Ṡ n d p m g m p d (navagāhamāḍi) 17. S /r s ṇ s r g m g chā yā va ti ya ni m g p m pē ru m d n ṡ je ṁ di na n Ṡ r s n d p m d n cā na mō vi ni D p m prē ma G r s grō lu cu svaram ṇ ḍ p. ṃ Ḍ n n S r s r g M d n d p m g R g M d n S n D p M g R g M p m D n (prēmagōlucu) 18. s r g m p /M p ja ya śu ddha mā ḷa p n d n vi ni mu nu p m g m bha ra tu ḍu 1382

148 P ṡ n ṡ ṙ Ġ g \Ṙ jā ya gā va riṁ ṡ n d n p m g ci yē lu \R r s n rī ti ni svaram s r s n Ḍ ṇ P. ṇ ṇ S r g M g m p n d n p m p n N ṡ ṙ r s s n n P d n p m G m m P p n ṡ (yēlurītini) muktāyi svaram p p. s ṇ s R ṇ g r g M p m g g r gg m g r r S s n ḍ ṇ p n m P m n ṙ ṡ ġ ṁ Ġ ġ ṙ s s n d n p m G g r s ṇ Ṡ r g r kanakāṁbari s s r M g r s ṇ ḍ p. Ḍ ṇ ḍ p. ḍ S phēnadyuti eḍuppu svaram S ṇ s \P. ḍ p. ṇ ṇ S 1383

149 caraṇam 19. m g m p d p / n d d p M g r \S s p m p d / n d ṡ s n d p p m g r \S s p m p m kā mu nā rī p d p / n rū pa mu d d pm ku jhaṁ P d n d p m p d kā ra bhr ma ri s \ N d nā da m p m g r mō rva ga svaram S ṇ ḍ p. ḍ ṇ ḍ S r m / m g g r \S s P p m p d / n d p d d Ṡ \n d d p m g R g m p m P d (nādamōrvaga) 20. S n d \m g m / p m \ g r prē ma nā rī /G r s rī ti ṇ \p /ṇ ṇ s. gau ḷi yu s /g g m /p m g m be ṭṭu ba lka ga / n d m n rā ni ga n ṡ n d \m ni sa gī svaram 1384

150 n d m g g m / p m g r s s ṇ p. ṇ ṇ /s S / g g m g r \S r g m / n d m / n n Ṡ s n d m g M P m g m (dāniganisagī ) 2 P / d p m m /p m g r kṣē ma ma la ri ga r m p d nī du nā P d n thu ni p g r r ṇ Ṡ ṙ n d p m p ce lva ma gu mu caṁ dra ki ra ḍ ṇ s r ṇā va li svaram r m p d p m m p G r s ṇ ḍ ṇ s r g r s r r m p d p d n / Ṡ n d p m p m G r s R m (mukhacaṁdrakiraṇāvali) 2 m p m \R / g r s bhā ma poṁ de du R m p m śrī ka ra ṁ P n ṡ ṁ ba gu / ġ ṙ s n \P d / n bha ya mu va dda ni p m r /g pa lka gā G r s vi ni svaram 1385

151 ṇ \Ṣ ṇ s r r \S r m p p M p n ṡ n Ṡ ṙ g r r S n p d n p p M r / G r s n s r M p ṡ n (palkagāvini) 2 s r / g s r m p d n kā ma da ha nu ni d Ṡ ṙ rā ṡ n d p ṇi ya gu m g R m p p d p gau rin vē ḷā va li m s r g ni bha ja na \S r m sē yu cu svaram p m g r S r g s Ṇ ḍ S r s r g \S r m P d N d S r s ṙ Ġ ṡ n d Ṡ n d p m g R m g r (bhajanasēyucu) 24. R M g / g s ṇ p r. nī ma nō ha ri /g s r m yu ṁ P n & d n ṡ ṁ nna di n s r s ṙ ṁ \Ṙ / g ṡ ni tya v i ra s N p va saṁ ta m r /g s tyā ga svaram 1386

152 m p m g r s m \r p m r g s r s ṇ ḍ ṇ \Ṣ ṇ ḍ ṇ s r r s R s r m r g \S r M m P p N n d n (vasaṁtatyāga) muktāyi svaram r / m r / g s r s ṇ ṇ ḍṇ p. ḍ ṇ ḍ ṇ s R m r r g s r M p n n d n m r /g S ṇ s r s R ṡ n d n ṡ r Ṁ r /Ġ ṡ ṙ /ġ S n d n p m kanakāṁbari s s r M g r s phēnadyuti eḍuppu svaram S n p \P d p n ṇ S uls r m p / D p m p caraṇam 4. (śarāvati) 1387

153 25. M g m p dd p m g r s\ Ṇ ḍ p. ḍ s r s m g m p d / n d p m g r g \ s m g m p d / n d vi ra ha vē da naa mu p p m g nu śa rā m p d p m va ti M p m p \ R g s \ṇ ḍ s vē ga va tu la ma m g g m ja ga ti lō pa la svaram m g r s r g m p d / n d p m R g s r s ṇ ḍ p. ḍ / ṇ ḍ S m g M p d n d p d Ṗ ṙ ṡ \ N d p \M g (jagatilōpala) 26. p d p g r s r g pē ru je ṁ di na m g g r ta ra ṁ s ḍ p ḍ. gi ṇu la nu s R g p d n d pe ṁ ṁ pu ja ṭa mu d p g r g r nu ṁ ga ṡ r g /m g g r ku ṁ ṁ ḍa ga svaram s ḍ ṣ ḍ ḍ ṇ ḍ p. g r s r g / m g r s t g p d d / n d p d d Ṡ d p p 1388

154 p g r s r g/ m g g r g p d / n (munuṁgakuṁḍaka) 27. g s r g r g m g sau ra sē nā m p d n dhi pa sa ra /Ṡ s n n sāṁ gi ni g s r g d p m g /M m g ca na vu mī ra ga m g r g brō va gā ta gu svaram g S R g m g G m g r S N S r g m P / d m r G M P d N S S N d p m g (brōvagātaku) 28. r g r / n M P ndpdpm g ha rikē dā ra r g r s n gau la ṇ ḍ ḍ p / s n s brō cē sr m p/ ṡ n d p / n n ṡ a cyutā ṁ ghṙ lu r s n d sma ra ṇa jē P m g R m r yu cu svaram r /m g r s ṇ ḍ p. / Ṇ s r r /p m g r s R m p / nd P m g \R m p 1389

155 / N d p m p n ṡ ṙ ṙ /ṁ ġ ġ ṙ (smaraṇajēyucu) 29. s \ ṇ s r g p m g \ r dhī ra śa ṁ ka rā s ṇ \ ḍ p. bha ra ḍ ṇ s r ṇa ṁ bai g. pmp mp dn ṡ n d ns tē jari llu cu nu s ṙ /ġ ṙ ṡ n ṁ ḍi d n / ṡ n / ṡ d p dha ra lō svaram p m g \r p \ n: s r g / m g \ r s n : \ d p ḍ ṇ S / r s / p m P g / m r / g \S m g m / d P m g \r \S r g m p d n (dharalō) 30. P p m g m R tā ra ka ma gu nā G ṇ s gā bha ra /R g m ṇā tma ja P n d n ṡ ṙ ṡ dā ru ṇa ma gu ma ru d n ṡ n dā ḍi p m g m r kō rva ni svaram s r g m P m g m r s R s ṇ Ṣ ṇ ḍ ṇ s r s r g m g m p p n 1390

156 d n Ṡ n p m G m R g m p n (dāḍikōrvani) muktāyi svaram g m r g s ṇ ḍ ṇ p ṇ ḍ ṇ. ṇ s r g s r g m p n d n n p p m m g m r m ṙ ġ ṡ s ṇ s r g m n \S n d n ṡ ṙ ġ m P n p n p P m g mr kanakāṁbari s s r M g r s phēnadyuti eḍupppu svaram S ṇ s \P. ḍ p. ṇ n S S r m g /uld p m g kalāvati M r g m r \S \Ṇ ḍ p ṇ S s d n d p d Ṡ n d p p M m r g. caraṇam

157 31 m r s m g m m p gā na lō la d / n d p ka lā S \ ṇ d p. ḍ ṇ ḍ kaṁ nna vā ru lu ba lka gā S / r g m \ r g m va ti ya ni G m g svaram g M P m g r g m r S ṇ ḍ P. d / ṇ ḍ S m r g da gu g m p D / n d p d S p d n d P m G r g m r \(balkagādaku) 3 M p m R s ṇ mā na bhū ṣa ṇa s m \ r g rā ga m p p Ṡ n n d ma ṇi ya naṁ da ku nu p m g pā ṭa svaram d m r g M m r s ṇ ḍ ḍ p. S r s M g r g m p m g P cū ḍā P m r pā ḍi na p n n ṡ ṙ Ṡ n d p m g p M g m r S m G m (pāṭapāḍina) 1392

158 3 s ṇ ḍ ṇ /S r g dā ni pra saṁ ga /M p / d dhō ra ṇi M G gaṁ gā M g m r m \ r g m P d n ta raṁ gi ṇi ya ni d p p d m je ppa va ccu nu svaram r s \ r g M d p /d m m r s ṇ P. ḍ ṇ s r s R g M P d n Ṡ r s N p d M g m r g m p d n (jeppavaccunu) 34. S ṇ s r G \ r pū ni bhō ga cchā g M p yā nā /n n d / n p ṭa nu n n ṅ d p ṡ po ga ḍaṁ ma nu vā N p ggē ya p m R va ti yau svaram g m r s ṇ ḍ ṇ p. Ṇ ṇ s r g m r \S r s / n d / n p p n n p ṙ ġ ṗ m ṙ ṡ N d n P m g m \ R g m p (gēyavatiyau) 1393

159 35. s m r s ṇ ḍ s \ṇ jā ṇa ya ṁ nni ṭa ku \p ḍ ḍ s ca ji ta śai s m G la dē P d ṡ ṁ ṙ r ṡ śā kṣi vi ji ta s n d kō ma / ṡ n p m ḷā ṁ bu ja svaram m g p d Ṡ n d Ṡ n p M r s Ṙ s ṇ ḍ ṣ ṇ p. P. d /r S m r r S m g m g P d p d d Ṡ r (kōmaḷāṁbuja) 36. m p /ṡ ṇ P. m r mā ni nī ma di s n \P ca la nā r s r g m ṭa le lla nu m p d n ṡ ṡ n /ṙ ṡ mā nci nī du r ġ ṁ ṙ ṡ n va śa ṁ ṁ bu n p m r s jē yu cu svaram S ṇ ḍ/ r s ṇ p. M r s P m r N p m p /ṡ S / r ġ n p \M r \s s r g m p d n s (nīduvaśaṁbujēyucu) 1394

160 muktāyi svaram S r s ṇ p ḍ ṇ S r s. s ṇ s r S /r s / m g / m r S r s r g m p Ṡ ṙ ṡ r ġ ṁ ṙ Ṡ /ṙ ṡ n ṡ n ṙ S /r ṡ n p ṡ n Ṡ / ẇ r ṡ n p m r kanakāṁbari s s r M g r ṡ ṇ ḍ p. Ḍ ṇ ḍ ṇ d S r R M p P D n d p d ṡ r ṁ \ G ṙ ṡ n d p d n d p m \ G r s r m p d Ṡ N d P m \ G r (ī kanakāṁbari nenayumu) phēnadyuti eḍuppu S ṇ s \P. ḍ p. n n s S r m p / D p m p saugandhini d n d Ṡ n d p p d p m g r g s r s \ Ṇ ḍ ḍ p. ḍ S r / M gr 1395

161 caraṇam s r m p d / n d p i ṁ du rā p m \ g ka nu gō r ru sau r s r / g r s \ ṇ ḍ p ḍ / ṇ. ga ṁ dhi niva le ni ḍ S r yiṁ ti R M ni nnē svaram D p/ n d p m P / d p m \ G r s r / g r S ṇ ḍ / ṇ ḍ S r r m p m p D ṡ n d p m g r s ṇ (nīyiṁtininne) 38. P m G r s ṇ jeṁ ga gā ma ti s /g g m ne ṁ ci /P / d p p m yā p m \G / n M p n ja ga nmō hi ni Ṡ ṙ ṡ n kō ri yu d p m g r g ṁ ṁ ṁ nna di svaram G g m r s n: s G r s n : : N ḍ ṇ S r s / G g R D g m p d p m 1396

162 d N ṡ Ġ g r Ṡ n d m p d n (kōriyunnadi) 39 m p m m p \r / g r s n ma ṁ da gā mi ni \ D / g r dhū li va / g g r r g r g rā ḷi /M p d n ṡ / N d p m mā ṭa la dhai rya \ G r s mu ṁ cu /P r m g g ko ṁ nna di svaram m p d /n /Ṡ r r / / G r s r m \M g r s R G / p m Ġ ṙ ṡ n D p m G r g m p d (dhairyamuṁcukonnadi) 40. S g R m p d aṁ da gā7ḍa na bhō P m p ma ṇi d p n ṡ ṁ ga ni g g r m n d p m G r s ya la ru tā ma ra m P m \g bō le me li mi svaram P d p m G r S g r m P d p n n Ṡ ġ ṙ ṡ ṙ ṡ N d p m G 1397

163 r s g R m (tāmarabōlemēlimi) 4 p n d n P m g ka ṁ da kuṁ ḍa ga g R s ku ṁ bhi Ṇ / g r niṁ ga la G /M P n d n kāṁ ta le lla nu ṡ n p p m sa ṁ nnu ṡ n p m g r ti ṁ pa ga svaram p p N d n s r S r g r m P m g g r g r s g R g m m p n ṡ G r ṡ N p m P n D n (sannutiṁpaga) 4 s g r g m p N ku ṁ di mō hā ṁ d N p da kā /ṙ s n ṡ ra mu lō / ġ ṙ ṡ n \ D n ṡ kṙ ṁ ku dā ni N p m brō cu g g r s ra vi kri ya svaram g r g m p n p m G r s r s ṇ p. ṇ ḍ ṇ s g r G m p n d n ṡ Ṙ 1398

164 s n n p P m G r s r g M p (brōcuravikriya) muktāyi svaram ] R r s n s g r S r s g r r g M p n d n n p P ṙ ṡ n ṡ ṙ s /G g R ṡ ṙ r ṡ S n p n p p m G ġ r s ṇ r s S n p m G r kanakāṁbari s s r M g r s phēnadyuti eḍuppu svaram S ṇ s\p. ḍ p. ṇ n S S r m p / D p m p gīrvāṇi d /N d p m p d P m g r G r r s \Ṇ ḍ p. ḍ ṇ d s r g r G m caraṇam

165 4 p d / n d p m g g va ru ni jē ra ga r s \ṇ ḍ nā ku ḍ p ḍ / ṇ. kṙ pa gī ḍ S r g g m m rvā ṇi śa ṁ ka ru G m p lō ka /d d p m ra kṣa ṇi svaram G r s r g M p d / n d p m G r s \ṇ ḍ p / ṇ s r G m P d. / n ḍ p d S\ n d p m G r S r (lōkarakṣaṇi) 44. G /d p m p / d p ā rya śa rvā / N /Ṡ ṇī /ṙ Ṡ n bha vā ni d p m p m g r s a ṁ bu jā sa ṇ S r na mu khya g m /d p va ṁ di ta svaram m g G r s ]r g R s ṇ ḍ p Ṇ s r g m p d p n Ṡ n d p M p. (aṁbujāsanamukhyavaṁdita) 1400

166 45. p d \m G r g m pa ra ma ka lyā p d N ṇi śu bhā d n ṡ n d p m ṁ gi śi va S p m g /n \D / n d p m pa ṁ tu va rā ḷi p d n ṡ no sa gi brō r n d p m vu mu svaram G r s r g m p d /n d m G n d p m G / d p p m g R g m p d n ṡ N n D p M g R s r g m (oagibrōvumu) p d p d 46. d m m g S ṇ ḍ s ni ra ta*mu n sta va R m /p rā ja mē di na mu N d Ṡ ṙ ġ ṡ ni nnu sē yu du n d p m G s na ṁ ṁ cu g ṡnd p mgs mi kki li svaram d M mg s s Ṇ ṇ s ṇ p. ḍ Ṣ r s p m G S m p /s s r G s p n d m g s r m p d Ṡ n D d m m G g S (mikkili) 1401

167 47. r g d \M g n a ru du gā sau d p d m vvī ra p d \M ba la mā P d Ṡ d d hā ra mai go ni n d p /d \m ta pa mu s G r r lpe ḍi svaram s r gg / m g r s Ṇ ḍ p. ḍ ṇ s r G / m g / D p m g S r G m p d Ṡ n D p D m G m p d n (tapamusalpeḍi) 48. / G \s r G m p kā ra ṇa ṁ bu ga n \ D n ṡ dā ni jī s n p m va ṁ ti Ġ,r Ṡ n p kā ya naṁ da ku n \ d n ṡ dē va ṡ n p m g r śī ghra me svaram s ṇ \P. s ḍ ṇ s / G r g m g r s r G m p n p d n ṡ ṙ / G ṙ ṡ S n p m G r s r S ṡ n n p ( dēvaśīghrame) 1402

168 muktāyi svaram S r G r r g M p N p p m G m P / d n ṡ N p ṡ n d n ṡ ṙ / G g ṙ ṡ n p /ṙ ṡ s n Ṡ n n P M G r r S ṇ \P. ḍ ṇ ṣ kanakāṁbari s s r M g r s phēnadyuti eḍuppu P ṇ s \M p d D p m p dhavaḷāṁgam /d P m g \R s d R g M p d ṡ \N d P m g \R s d g r caraṇam s /P m g r s r sō mu kā ka lu G m g dē ha me / d p p m p d lla nu 1403

169 ṡ \ n d d p m sō ka dha va ḷāṁ g r g m p d gi ya na ṁ d \ m g r ga nu svaram s R g m p d m g r s\ṇ ḍ p ḍ S r G m p d / N d p d /ṙ ṡ. ṙ /Ġ ṙ s \ N d (dhavaḷāṁgiyanaṁganu) 50. G M /P m g r nā ma dē śi p d n d pra ba la mā \M p d ye nu N / ṙ d Ṡ n nā ri yē ga ti P m g tā ḷa ne r s r g rcu nu svaram r s r g s d p M g r S d ṇ ṇ s r s r G r g M p d p m g d /ṙ Ṡ ṙ /ġ ṙ ṡ P n Ṡ n d (tāḷanērcunu) 5 r S g \r g m p kā mu rā d n \ d p ṇi ya gu m g /D ra ti saṁ 1404

170 P d / s n d p m kā śi rā ma g r s n kri ya lu ga ḍ ṇ s g r ṭṭi ga svaram S g r g m p d p m G / d p m g r /G r s ṇ ḍ ṇ g \R g m p d p d /Ġ ṙ ṡ ṙ ṡ n (rāmakriyalugaṭṭiga) 5 G m p n p m G rā ma nī ma nō p M m p ra mā ma ṡ n d /ṙ nō ha ri ṡ n d p d \m / p g rā ya ḍi ṭṭu la /P n ṡ jē ya n d p m nyā ya ma svaram P s s n n P n d P n ṡ /ṙ r Ṡ n p m G r g P r s ṇ p. d d p m p d p m g r g p d nṡ n (jēyanyāyama) 5 /P m d \ m g m p bhā ma ga ma ka d p ṡ ṡ kri ya \ n d.s ṙ ve la ya ni 1405

171 Ġ ṙ Ṡ n d ṡ pa ṁ ci mī ṭu nu /ṙ ṡ d /ṡ ce vu li ki p d p m g ṁ bu ga svaram m p /d m g r s ṇ ḍ s \P. ḍ s r s r g /d m G m m g r g m d g m p d / s N d Ṡ ṙ Ġ ṙ Ṡ n d ṡ (cevulakiṁpuga) 54. r s ṇ \P. r s ṇ mō mu mō mu na jē \ ḍ ṇ / S rcci vaṁ r g m p śa va ti ki p / Ṙ ṡ n \ d n ṡ mō ha dā ha mu s N p dī rci M g r gra kku na svaram s r r r g r g M pp n p p /ṙ r r s n d n Ṡ ṙ ṡ P n p p M g d n (dīrcigrakkuna) g r S r g M g M P n muktāyi svaram 1406

172 g r r r g r s ṇ rr s s n \p rr s ṇ ḍ ṇ s r gg r g m p nn p n \P. n d n s R /g r ṡ n / S n p /r S n p m g r s Ṇ p. / R s n kanakāṁbari s s r M g r s phēnadyuti eḍuppu svaram S ṇ s \P. ḍ p. ṇ ṇ ṡ S r m p /D p m p śāmaḷa /N d p m P m G r S g r S R G M r g M P / n d caraṇam p d p m / p g R śā ma la la vā s P m śi rō ma /P n d ṇī ni nu P d ṡ ṙ n d p cau śī ti baṁ da d \M p mu cē ta g r s g r nē lu nu 1407

173 svaram S s P / n d p m / p g r s r p m p / n d p d S n d p m g r g p m (cauśītibaṅdamucētanēlunu) P n ṡ 56. G m / p g r m p lē ma nē tra pu P m /p cā ma raṁ bu la n d p m p m G m lī la gā vi p d ṡ m la si p d / n d p lla vī cu nu svaram s g r g m /p g r s ṇ ḍ p. ṇ s r g / p m g r m p d p d Ṡ s m p d n d p m g r g m p N s N d p (vilasillavīcanu) 57. m p m \ G r s ṇ hē ma kā nti ji ta s m g m su ma p m g r dyu ti s r / g r S p m ke ne ya lō ka mu P d n lō ni s n d p m kā ṁ ta lu 1408

174 svaram G r s ṇ ḍ P. d ṇ s r G m g / p m G m p d n Ṡ ġ ṙ ṡ ṙ ṡ D p m g r S p m p d N d p d n Ṡ s n d n (kāṁtalu) 58. p n d p d m /P vā ma nē p n s g tra ci lu ka ṙ ṡ n.s la ra va ḷi p /D p s r s s va na pra bf dē śa siṁ s M g ṁha ra R g m vaṁ bu la svaram p m G r g m p p m G r G r s \P. ṇ s r g p s / G r s r G m p d n p Ṡ s m d (siṁharavaṁbula) 59. G m p m g r G kē mi ga ti gā r s ṇ ḍ tā ḷa Ṇ s r nē rcu nu / G m P d /S yiṁ pu mī ra nī n d p d du dhā m g r s n ma va ti ni 1409

175 svaram S r g m p d p D n ṡ ṙ ṡ n d N s ṙ / Ġ ṙ ṡ N d p m g r S n d n s r g M p d (nīdudhāmavatini) : : 60. s g r g m /P m p prē ma tō ma da ṡ n /Ṡ na ni ṣā n d n ṡ n du ni N p M ṡ n d m bhi ti mā ñci g r n s ya ti pri yaṁ eye s n g r bu ga svaram p n p m m g r s r g r s ṇ ḍ ṇ p. ṇ Ṇ g r g m p d n ṡ ṙ ṡ n Ġ ṙ ṡ S n P m / G r g r (atipriyaṁbuga) muktāyi svaram r /G g r s. G m g m p n \P m g s N / r s ṇ ṇ \P s ṇ ḍ ṇ s r 1410

176 m P d n ṡ ṙ / ġ ṙ ṡ n / S n p m G r r S r s Ṇ ṇ \P. ḍ ṇ kanakāṁbari s s r M g r s phēnadyuti eḍuppu svaram S ṇ s \P. ḍ ṇ ṇ S S r m g / D p m p kuntaḷa M G R g M g r s r /g s ḍ p S. m p \R r s ṡ \ N d p m caraṇam g r s \ṇ ḍ p S. a ti va ni ṁ nne s r g m kō ru ka p m G nna di rā m p d / n d p / n d a ṁ da gā ḍa p ṡ d a rā ḷa / n d p m ku ṁ ta ḷa svaram 1411

177 g r g /m / P m g r g R s \ Ṇ ḍ s S r g r G p s r g m p / d m p d / n D / n p M g r G m p / d (arāḷakuṁtaḷa) g p d 6 p m r g \S r g ra ti pri yaṁ bu ga m P m m g sē ya gō ru ka G m g / N n Ṡ n d rā tru le lla7nu P m g ni dra lē ka ne svaram d p ṡ n n Ṡ ṡ / M g R p. ṇ ḍ s ṇ ṇ s r G m s r g P m g /d P d N n d p m g r g m p d (nidralēkanne) 63 R g rr s r g gī ta pri ya gu ru p m P gu ha bā d P m hu lē ya S n d D ṡ N d n /ṡ kē ki vā ha su rēṁ ṁ dra \G m p vaṁ di ta svaram 1412

178 p m g r / g s Ṇ p. ḍ Ṇ s r g r g m p /S N ṡ ṙ ġ ṡ ṙ Ṡ n p /D p m g S r g m p d (surēṁdravaṁdita) 64. d n d G r s r nī ti tō ba hu g s s s bhū ṣā m p d n \P va tī d ṗ ṙ r Ṡ ṙ ġ nī ko saṁ ge da.s p d naṁ cu n p g r ne ṁ nnu cu svaram s r g \S r p m g dd m g R D n p g r S d : p : d : s r g s r g p m P d n p d Ṡ r ṡ ṙ ġ \ṡ s s g m p d n (nennucu) 65. m g /M /P d n ma ti ka lyā ṇi D /r ṡ n g yo sa gu rā M p D n gā ṁ ga rā ga M d N ṙ n mā li kaṁ go ni ṙ n d p m /n d prē ma mī p m g r s ra ga svaram 1413

179 n r \Ḍ ṇ S r G m p / d m p d M g r g n g d m g r \N g \ṇ N / r Ṡ n d m n d m p \G m p d (prēmamīraga) 66. g s r g M P a ti va rā vē N ṡ ṙ haṁ7sa yā r n \ d n na ca tu m g r s ṡ ṙ ġ N r s n ra ṁ gi ṇi ya ni d n p m mē la mā ḍu cu svaram G r g p ṇ P. Ṇ s r P p m P n d n ṡ N ṡ ġ N ṡ ṙ Ṡ n d n p M p m g r g M P n (mēlamāḍucu) muktāyi svaram r G s r s ṇ S ṇ r s s Ṇ p. ṇ s s R g m p p N d n s n p ġ Ṙ r ġ Ṡ ṙ Ṡ s N n d n Ṡ n p d n p m G s r g s r s 1414

180 kanakāṁbari s s r M g r s phēnadyuti eḍuppu svaram S n : s \P : d : p : n n S g r / g s r M /p g r S r m p / D p m p santānamañjari /D P / d p m G / m R s ḍ P. s R r s r g m p d / N d p d p m 67. p ṡ g m m r r s pa sa ga ta na kō ka saṁ s G r g tā na M g m r maṁ ja ri S / r G m p bā gu kā da ya ṡ \ N d sē yu m d m p ma nu cu nu svaram /d d p m G / m m R S ṇ ṇ ḍ p. ḍ ḍ S r g M p d /N d p d d Ṡ Ṁ ṙ r s d / n d p (daya) (sēyumanucunu) 1415

181 68. d p m g s N n mi s mi ga la mē ni P p m jō ti ki g M g yi ra vai D p m m p d P /N me la gu va llī p ṡ n d dē va sē r na la svaram r g P ṇ ṇ p. s r g M m p d p s n D n ṡ p d N p m R S g ṡ N p m (vallīdēvasēnala) 69. s p m \ R g s bhā su raṁ bu ga s / r g m nē lu / D \ m p dhau ta d m \ r g P d \M p d paṁ ca mā yu dha Ṡ n d saṁ ni bhā ṁ ga svaram \ S S p m p / D P m g m P d n Ṡ n d P m R ṡ d m (paṁcamāyudhasannibhāṁga) 1416

182 70. m p m P Ṡ m e sa gu nā sā ma n d D ṇi yu dā n p n d ni ki / N n Ṡ p m ne nna ḍu n pra ti p P n pha liṁ ci d p m \ r g yu ṁ ḍa ga svaram M p m P d n D n ṡ / Ṙ r ṡ n d Ṡ n d P M r s n p n d (ennadunpratiphaliñciyuṇḍaga) R ṡ d 7 s s M p d n d ku su mā ka ra ni la p Ṡ ṙ ya mau śrī ghṙ dhra p m n \m n d ṡ N d g p ku dha ra vā sa ga jā na nā M m r nu ja svaram s S r \S Ḍ s \Ṇ S m p / d d p m P ẇ r ġ S /Ṙ ṙ s p m P D ṡ /ṙ r Ṡ n d p m (gajānanānuja) 1417

183 7 s s p m M /P p ra sa ma ṁ ja ri pri m p n \ d ya vē ṁ n /Ṡ ṡ ka ṭē śva s / Ṙ ġ ṡ n d n ra ye ṭṭē ṁ *dru ni p M p brō cu p m p r g s ṣa ṇmu kha svaram s S n S / r r s s \ Ṇ s P m P r g \S S ṇ ḍ ṇ s r ṇ S r g s p m p n d n ṡ r ġ ṡ n d n (brōcuṣaṇmukha) muktāyi svaram s s r r g S s p m pp p m m P \S s d d n \P. / r r S n S r g s p m P p p n d N n p ṡ r ġ \Ṡ n d n p m p r g \S r g kanakāṁbari s s r M g r s ṇ ḍ p. Ḍ / ṇ ḍ p ḍ S r r M P p D / n d p d ṡ 1418

184 ṙ ṁ \ Ġ ṙ ṡ n d p d / n d p m \ G r s r m p d Ṡ n d P m \ G r (ī kanakāṁbari nenayumu) end of rāgāṁga rāgamālikā 1419

185 A.16 rāgamālikā ādi tāḷa Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi S m g r / g r s s sā ma ja ga ma na ni d R r / p nu kō ri m g n g r na dī rā : : : : s / r n d \m d / s n / g r sa la li ta gu ṇa hā S rā S S S : : : : anupallavi n d m p mp g m/ n g / m\r r s śrī ma hā ha ṁ mī rupra r s / p m / d p n S / r tā pa si ṁ hē ṁ n D d p Ṡ dru ni ta na ya ṡ : : : : 4. ḍ / Ġ \Ṙ ṡ d p / d p / d ci ra ṁ jī vi a ma ra p g / p g / d p g si ṁ ha bs r g / p bhū g r s pā la : : : : muktāyi svaram g R s r G r g P g p d p d (sāmam) P d P p m m m G r s r caraṇam 5. P m R S n nā ṭa kā laṁ kā n p. S ra śā r g m r s stra mu kha na : : : : 6. r m r m S d p na ya mu ga pā ṭa pā p ṡ n p ḍi vi ni / D p m piṁ cu ra : : : : 7. G g / P p p g / p g jū ḍi gā nu mō p d d /ṡ d p ha nā ṁ ga p g / d p g g r tē ṭa : : : : 8. r r r g m P p m m n d so ga su śā na ni n s d n d p p sa ra sa ma \rgmp n dpm g m r va sa ra mu ga : : : : 1420

186 muktāyti svaram S S ṡ ṙ ṙ ġ g m ṙ r g ṙ ġ ṙ \ n ṡ ṡ dhīṁ dā ra dhi tti llā nā di ri nā taṁ di ri nā di ri (sāmam) S d P p m m m G r g s r caraṇam 9. N s R p p m g r nī vē ra si ka śi S p / n khā ma ṇi \m p m g r s ra ṁ gu na : : : : 10. d ṡ n p m p d p m g m r s nē rpu pa rā kā r g m p d pi li cā p d ṡ n p d m p da ri ṁ cu : : : : 11 n s n p m r g r s n śrī vi la si lla nī M ka ḍa gaṁ n s r / p /n n \M p ṭa jū ḍu : : : : 1 n s d p m p \m r / m r m P ce lu va nī da ru bā d n n s d \m ru gā ci g g m r s na di rā : : : : muktāyi svaram/tillānā G m R r r /p m p m d d / N D p m d d p m p p tāṁ tāṁ ta ka ṇa ka ja ga ṇa ka dhīṁ dhīṁ ki ṭa ta ri ki ṭa ta ka (sāmam) Ṡ d P p m m m G r g s r caraṇam 3 1 d d d n ṡ d p m ka nna ḍa sē ya ku g m d p mā rā g m r n s g m ma rā ma : : : : 14. # m g g /p p /d d p \ m g g \r g p ka li ki nē nu kō d p d /ṡ rā n d p vē / n d p p m G vē ga mē : : : : 1421

187 15. / p m /d \g / p m p m p d n ma nne do ra vu pē ru \G / p M ka lyā /d m g r / g g R ṇi rā : : : : 16. s R s s m p m d p ṡ mā ca kka ni a ma ra /ġ ṙ s n / ṡ \ d p m si ṁ hē ē ṁ dra m r g m r s raṁ ga : : : : muktāyi svaram R r g m p / s D p M g m p d n (sāmam) Ṡ d P p m m m G r g s r caraṇam g m p p m p D p m p n ku lu ku lā ḍi mo la nū n/ r ṡ nd p / dp lu khaṁṭhā p m \ g r s ra va mu lu : : : : 18. # d / s n ṡ /ġ g R s s n n s ku va la yā kṣi ki d N d sau P m rā ṣṭra /dpm g r/ g r s dē śa mu : : : : 19. p m p d p m g g r s a la ja va rā ḷi ki d g r g m mmu ni ci na p d / n d p m g r dē mō ha mu : : : : 20. s m \ g m p d d / s n / r r ṡ ā ha rī ṁ dru ni pū ji ṁ cu ṡ \n \ d \p tyā gē śu kṙ p \g / m g r s pa ni ja mu : : : : muktāyi svaram G / M P g m P d /n \D P (sāmam) /S d P p m m m G r g s r (sāmajagamana) END OF APPENDIX A 1422

188 Appendix B compositions of various composers B.1 daru gaṅgātaraṅgiṇi rāga tiśra jāti ēka tāḷa Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi S r s m g m s r S sā ra sa na ya na sa ra sā S ṇ ḍ p. p. ḍ ṇ S sā ra ta ra ra ta ra sā anupallavi M m P p P m M mā ra tā ta tā ra mā M g m p d d p m g M mā ni ta ma dhya ma ta ni mā P d n Ṡ n d P tā ra pa bhā pa ra tā P Ṡ n Ṡ m g m S n S tā pi tā va ya va tā pi tā caraṇam P d P m g m P d P bhā raṁ bhā ta mi ta bhā raṁ bhā D p D n P m P n D p D bhā va rā ga tā ḷa tā ga rā va bhā M M m G m p m G m bhā ra tē ta va ta tē ra bhā P d d n ṡ n ṡ n d d P sā na pa ti ta pa ti ta ma na sā D n ṡ n Ṡ n ṡ n D hā ra vi dhi rō dhi vi ra hā P m g m P m g m P hā va na na tā na na va hā 1423

189 Compositions of various composers Appendix B M g m P m P m g M sā ra tu mē tu mē sa ra sā p d n ṡ n d d n ṡ n d p sa khi vē ṁ ka ṭa kṙ ṣṇa sa ra sa a Each kaṇṭika of the dātu mātu for this daru is arranged as a palindrome, just like the phrase vi ka ṭa ka vi. In the last line of the caraṇam, the dātu alone exhibits this feature. But the mātu there is not palindromic, like the earlier ones. B.2 kīrtana śaṅkarābharaṇa rāga rūpaka tāḷa Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita gurumūrtē pallavi s r gu ru S n mūr tē s r ba hu G R kī rtē g p gu ha M G sē nā m r dhi pa S tē S anupallavi g m su ra P p p sē vi ta m g śi va M m m bhā vi ta m r su ma G m p tē ni śa m g ma va R m g g r māṁ srī caraṇam p. ḍ sa ra Ṇ s r sī ru ha g m bha va R g m vaṁ di ta p d sa ka P m g lā ga ma p m nu ta R S dē vā s r g m su ra pa ti p d P m g R ta nu jā dhi pa tē g m p d su ra va ra n ṡ Ṙ ka ru ṇā n g R ja la dhē n ṙ Ṡ gi ri jā m d P g m r s tma ja ṣa ṇmu kha bha va ṇ r ṇ g gu ru gu ha r s p m m g g r śa ra va ṇa bha va śrī B.3 kīrtana rudrapriya rāga caturaśra jāti ēka tāḷa Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita B 1424

190 Compositions of various composers Appendix B pallavi g ga g M g ṇa nā ya n R kaṁ bha s R g jē haṁ bha M g jē ka r S ṇ ma lē śa p. Ṃ ṇ nu taṁ kā n s n s ma ri pu g R su tam anupallavi n a n S n ṇi mā di p M n si ddhi dā n n Ṡ ya kaṁ s p n s : : n su mu khaṁ : : a n Ṡ n ṇi mā di p M n si ddhi dā n n Ṡ ya ka m s s n p m su mu kha m caraṇam n vā n Ṡ ṙ ṇī ṁ ṙ Ṙ Ṙ ra ma ṇā ṙ ṙ ġ ṁ eye na ṁ daṁ m g ṙ r va ra daṁ r s n p va da nē p m n n dvi ra daṁ n ṡ n p m va ra bā la g r ṇ g r g gu ru gu ha ṁ ga g M g ṇa nā ya n Ṙ ka ṁ bha g s R jē haṁ bha M g jē ē g R s ē a S s B.4 kīrtana rudrapriyā rāga ādi tāḷa Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi P P P p d tyā gē śaṁ bha ja /N N rē rē n d d p m mā na sa : : : : B 1425

191 Compositions of various composers Appendix B /N N N d ṡ tā pā dhiṁ tya ja \N N rē rē D d p m mā na sa : : : : anupallavi g R r r m p d yō gī śa vi hi ta ṁ ṡ N n bhō gī śa n d d p m ma hi tam P d n d d p p M śrīguruguhaviditaṁ g /m g g R su ra muditam R M siṁ mhā p d sa na S ṡ pa tiṁ n d d p m pa śu pa ti m P P P p m tyā gē śaṁ bha ja \ G \R rē S rē S B.5 kīrtana kēdāragauḷa mēḷa, juñjūṭi dēśīya rāga ēka tāḷa Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi g r S ṇ ṇ \P. ḍ ga ṇē śa ku mā ra /S ṇ S pā hi māṁ ga ja mu kha S s ṇ s r g r S ṇ ṇ \P. ḍ ga ṇē śa ku mā ra /S ṇ \ S pā hi māṁ ma ma S m m anupallavi m g m P m g r s ma nō ra tha si ddhi r G r G G g dā ya kā ga m p D g m r g ma pa dā di nu ta bha s R r /p m m g r s ṇ s r va śrī gu ru gu ha hi ta ga ja mu kha g r S ṇ ṇ \P. ḍ ga ṇē śa ku mā ra /S n / S pā hi mā m S B 1426

192 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.6 kīrtana īśamaṇīhari rāga ādi tāḷa Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi n D p m g r s n a naṁ ta bā la kṙ ṣṇa mā n s R g m ma va mu kuṁ r g m p da śrī ha rē : p : : n D p m g r s n a naṁ ta bā la kṙ ṣna mā n s R g m ma va mu kuṁ r g m p da śrī ha rē p d n d P m g r g m g R vanajamu khāṁbujapa damatē S S r g dī nā va na m p d n Ṡ Ṡ na ga dha ra śau rē anupallavi s d N s n Ṡ n ṡ dha naṁ ja ya sā ra thē s r G m g da yā ni dhē r Ṡ ṙ ġ kṙ pāṁ ku ru g ṙ Ṡ s n n D n ṡ ma nō ma ya kō śā tma kā s n D p d ma ra gu ru p m G m p gu hā naṁ da M g g m P m p mā yā ma ya gō ku la D p d n vā sa ni raṁ n d n S ja na śrī ṡ B.7 kīrtana nāgasvarāḷi rāga caturaśra jāti ēka tāḷa Subbarāma Dīkṣita ārōhaṇa: avarōhaṇa: s g m p d S s d p m g s lakṣaṇa vivaraṇa - Subbarāma Dīkṣita janya of harikēdāragauḷa mēḷa; upāṅga; auḍava; ṣaḍja graha; ṙṣabha and niṣāda varjya in the avarōhaṇa; suitable for singing at all times. dātu: śrī Tyāgarājayya; mātu: Subbarāma Dīkṣita ED: This rāga is currently knon by the name īśamanōhari. B 1427

193 Compositions of various composers Appendix B pallavi p śrī d ṡ d P va llī m p m g m g m p tē pā p \M d p D :: p d hi mā ṁ : ci / ṡ d p d ṡ ṁ ti tā s ṡ d p m d p rttha dā m g s s m g m ya p m d p d kā śrī ṡ d P va llī m p m g m g m pa tē pā p \M g / p hi m g \ S mā m anupallavi s dē s ġ Ġ va sē ṡ ġ ṁ ġ ṡ ġ ṁ ġ nā nā tha ṁ ġ ṁ /ṗ ṁ ġ Ṡ :: d ja ga nnā thā : dī d ṡ D na baṁ d /ṡ d d ṡ d ṡ dō da d d p p d ṡ yā si ṁ s d p m p d ṁ dhō śrī caraṇam p vā p S p gī śa m p m m p m p ga rva ha ra m g g m p m g ha ra ku mā /m g S s rā yō s G g gī śa s g M g m mā na p m p d d p sā gā p m P rā : s : śrī d s d ṡ gṙ d ṡ ṡ ġ dhrā dri vi ṡ ġ ṡ ġ ṁ hā Ġ ġ rā bhō g Ṡ ġ gī śa ṡ ġ ṡ s d d /ṡ nu ta gu ru d d p p d ṡ gu ha ku mā s d p m rā The folloing sequence should be sung a second time d ṡ d d Ṡ d s śrī gṙ B 1428

194 Compositions of various composers Appendix B svaram p d Ṡ d p m p m g M g m P \M m D p d s s d d p m p d /s d p m g / p m g \S S s g m g M g m p m P s g m p m d : : p d ṡ s ġ g ṡ s g g Ṁ g/m m g/ m g ṡ s ṡ \ġ ṡ s S d /ṡ d d P p d ṡ s ṡ \ġ ṡ s D d / ṡ d d P p d ṡ Ṡ ṡ d ṡ d p p p m p m M g / p m G / m g S ṁ ġ ṡ d p m p d śrī B.8 cauka varṇam vaṁśavati rāga ādi tāḷa dhātu: Bālusvāmi Dīkṣita mātu: Muttukkumārappulavar pallavi s S p m P p m vi ra ka mu p m g r va śa s ṇ \ ḍ ṇ ma l la /S ṭi S S s p a r s r g r g n na mē p M m g r ye n nai : : : : s / R ṡ r G p g R mē va vu ṁ s ṇ s ṇ ṇ ṇ va ra c co \P. p. /ṇ ṇ l lla B 1429

195 Compositions of various composers Appendix B / S ṭi S S s p a r s r g r g n na mē p M m g r ye n nai : : : : anupallavi G \R r s S S pe ru ku n ti R G ru ma M P ṭan tai m M N P ma ru vuṁ i m m g ḷa cai M M vā zhum n n N P vi rai moy ta p /ṙ ṡ n tā ma N Ṡ vā can n Ṡ N P tu rai mu ttu ṡ n p m cā mi g r S rā ca n S S s n \P r r s r g g mē ni ppu ya lē po zhi mā ri ca / p M G g r mā na tti ṭa S p p m p n n nēr ka vi kū ra va n Ṡ R ġ ṙ ṡ / r ṡ n P /ṙ ṙ tā ni kka ru l ti yā ka ta yā ku ṇa S n p p vā ne tta nai p m g g m g r s n lī lai ce y tā na ṭi svaram S P m g m p n p p m m g g \R S N ṇ p. p r s r G r r s r g / p M p n n d N ṡ r r / ġ ṙ ṡ n /ṙ Ṡ n p \m m g g \R r s ṇ caraṇam ṗ P P p p ci lai vi ja m m G yan pō l \R S van tu : : : : svaram (1) /R S ṇ ṇ \p. p / r r s s r g m B 1430

196 Compositions of various composers Appendix B (2) / R r / g r r s S s / r s s ṇ Ṇ ṇ s ṇ p. r r \S r s r g m (3) M g g r S s ṇ P. / r r S r r g g / M g \R s r G : : m g g \R ṡ r g m p n d n ṡ ṙ ṡ S n p P m g r s S r g m (4) S S \ S s ṙ /ġ ṙ r ṡ n ṡ ṙ ṡ s n p n n /Ṡ N p m g r S s n p m G /ṙ s n P m g r : : s ṇ s r s p m n p ṡ n /ṙ ṡ n d n ṡ n p m g r s ṇ p r r g m p n n ṡ ṙ / ġ Ṙ R ṡ n /Ṡ ṡ n p m m g r r S s ṇ p. R r g m p P P p p 1 ci la vi ca 2 ye n nai ppu 3 vē ṅ ka ṭē m m G yan pō l ṇa r nta cu ra \R S van tu cā mi ye ṭṭa s R s r G \R 1 tē vai ka1 2 kke va ḷ pō ti t 3 mē n ti ra S ṇ p. ḷe llā ṁ tā ḷō na ru ḷi p / r S ta n tu kā mii yi ṭ ṭa s R G m m 1 ma la ra nai 2 co n nā lu m 3 ci n kā ta P m m yi li ta ḷḷa na na g g R ru t ti vā mō rē ndr an s N \P / R 1 ma nam ti ru 2 cu kam pō 3 tē vē n S ti mō ran S S s g R 1 ka la vai tti 2 min nā rca 3 raṅ ga mā l /R S R G mir ndu ki ppā ja gat M P miñ ci rō avar vī ra m p N N P 1 k ka ṭṭi a 2 ver Rō cai 3 tāa ma ku p p m g ṇa n tu ci ki p mā re ṭ M P koñ ci pā rō ṭṭen dra B 1431

197 Compositions of various composers Appendix B N N N /P 1 k ku la vi k 2 ye n nā lē 3 tu ṅ ga śrī /R ṙ s \n kī taṅ ka ḷ tu ṅ la kṣu mi N Ṡ pā ṭi ku raiyō vā can Ṡ N P 1 ko ṇ tā ṭi 2 yi l la RRu 3 tu rai mu ttu ṡ n p m na tō r kki tu cāmi g r S kō ṭi mu Rai yō rā ja n P P ṇ ṇ \ P r r s r g g 1 kō lākala vē ḷa ṭi nā n ra ti 2 yē tō te ri yātuma ra n tu 3 co n ta ttuṭa nē ya ṇai mī ti li p M G g r pō lā ka vum po tā te na run tu c ci ta S p p m p n n vā ḷa ṭi nī yen yā tu pa kar n ta tu mā vu Ra vā ṭi na n Ṡ /R / ġ r ṡ /ṙ ṡ n P /r r 1 lī lā cu ka mā ka vi ṭē ne na 2 nī tā na ṭi kā ta li yanpo ṭu 3 a n ta ccu ka mē ma Ra vā malum svaram P N p p vē lā vi nai tū t a ki vi van ti cca ṇa p m g g m g r s n yā ka vu mmē vi na ṭā tu ka rai tti ṭu mē va vu mē co llu S P m g m p N p p m m g g \R S ṇ ṇ \P p r s r G r r :: s r g / p M p n n d N ṡ ṙ r /ġ ṙ s n / ṙ Ṡ n m p m g g \R r ṡ n B.9 padam kāmbhōji rāga miśra jāti ēka tāḷa Composed by Vēṅkaṭēśvara Eṭṭappa Mahārājā, His Highness the Rājā of Eṭṭayapuram. This padam as composed by the present Mahārājā, in the form of a question-anser conversation beteen Lord Muruga and Vaḷḷi, hen Lord Vināyaka appeared as an elephant, and caused concern for Valli. pallavi d ṡ s N n d d p e ṁ du ku n D / n d / n yī mā ṭa D m p D n p P d ṡ lā ḍe dā \ n d d / n p P vō ce li yā d p m p : : a a : : (2) d s \ n n d d p ye ṁ du ku B 1432

198 Compositions of various composers Appendix B d / n p P ce li yā \M m p p / ṡ d d / d p yi ka mā ṭa p m G / m r r /g \S le lē S p m p / s d ma ru mā d / n p ṭa p m G / m r r g \S le lē S p r g / m r r / p m g pō pō g / m \R S vē S anupallavi m g P / D mu ṁ du nī Ṡ / g R Ġ vā ḍi na ṁ ġ Ṙ ṙ ġ r Ṡ S po ṁ dai na d s \n n d d / n p / D mā ṭa la D : : p d /Ṙ Ṡ : viṁ du nu d ṡ \n n d p p m P d ṡ yī ka ri P d ṡ \ N d d / n p ve ra pu nu / d m g P da /ṡ N p dī rca rā svaram D ṡ \ n d p m P m g / p M p d \P \g / p M p d M p d / n d p : D Ṡ rġ ṁ ġ \ r ṡ \ n d p d /ṙ \Ṡ n d \P M G r P m g p D Ṡ p d /.r ṡ n d p m G m p d / n d p m g / p M / P \S r \S m g m p p /n d \P /ṡ n d p m g m p :: m G p ṡ / ġ R ġ /Ṁ ġ ṙ / ṁ ġ ṙ / ṙ d / ṙ d / ṙ ṡ / ṙ nd /ṙ \ ẇ s B 1433

199 Compositions of various composers Appendix B ṡ n d p /ṡ \ N d p m / d P m g r / g s ṇ p. d s r m g p d / g ṙ ṡ n p caraṇam d ṡ N n d d p ī vē ḷai a yi na nu a ṁ mma mā s D / n D / N nī mā ṭa ma ku va la ṭa la naṁ mmi D d p D p D p le ṭu la naṁ mā ṭa lu ya la yē nu \ N D d / n p \M mma ka mau nu ka lla lē ka nu ta Ri mi M m m p / p d d / n p yiṁ ti rō ni a ppa ṭa aṁ daṁ bu \M G g / m r r /g s pa lu ku lu ppa ṭi ki va llī cai S s r G g / m r ni ja mu gā ma na su vē ba ṭṭi mu r p m g / m r \S vai tē rau nu ddu be ṭṭi S Ṡ m g S / D yī vē a yi tē nā so mma si lli /Ṡ ṡ / ġ Ṙ Ġ daṁ ḍa mu nu tu kaṁ da ri ni śrī ghṙ dhrā m g R r ġ r Ṡ Ṡ nī daṁ ḍa sa ri gā veñ ca la kā rti D p d /Ṙ Ṡ yi yu ṭē nin aṁ da kā ṭa soṁ ta rū pa \ N d d / n ṗ /D rā nī nu ca vu ccu na kē yu ḍu N D P m P d ṡ nnu ra kṣim ci niṁ nē mu jū pi ñcu ci S d ṡ \ N d /Ṙ Ṡ yi ṁ pu so ṁ nē vē ḷa saṁ ta siṁ pa p /m g P d /ṡ ni p pa ṁ du du ma ra va nu jē se ne B 1434

200 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.10 padam bēgaḍa rāga miśra jāti ēka tāḷa Subbarāma Dīkṣita Words by Rao Bahadur K. Jagannātha Ceṭṭy gāru Retired Devān of Eṭṭayapuram Samasthānam Music by Subbarāma Dīkṣita pallavi m / p m g M i ṁ de ṁ du p p M D p d va cci ti rā n N s D P na ḷi nā kṣi m M p g / m R yi llu s s / r ṇ s ḍ p. yi di gā s S g r g m p d du pō pō p / d p m p m R S rā n N s D P na ḷi nā kṣi m M / p m R S yi llu s r ṇ s ḍ p. ṣ s yi di gā n n g R g m p d / d p m /p m R S rā S anupallavi m / d P M ma ṁ da ra p / d m / p g / m R da ru dau mā s ṇ s m g p m vē ṁ ka ṭē śva ra d P n ṡ ṙ Ṡ ye ṭṭē ṁ dra s n ṡ ṙ ṡ ṡ m \ g yi ṁ du va ṙ Ṡ r n ṡ d p d da na ma di p d / n n n s d p m p ne ṁ ci va d p d/ n n d p cci ti vō m g r s B 1435

201 Compositions of various composers Appendix B svaram / p M G / p M P g / p M p d p d n n s d p m /d p m / p g r s / r ṇ ḍ ḍ p. s s / p M g r g m p /d p m p / d p m G r g m P : : g m P d p ṡ n d p m / p g r S / ṛ ṇ ḍp. ḍ p. s ṇ r s ṇ s g G m p d p \M p d p p \M p / s N d p \M / d p \ M p m G r g m p d p Ṡ \ N ṡ ṙ Ṡ m g r S / r n d P / d p \M m g r S ṁ ġ ṙ ṡ / ṙ n d p m g r S / p N d p \ M g r d m g r r s M G p M P g m P g m p d S g m p d n n d d P d m P d \ M p \G \ R G / p M g R S r Ṇ s d P / s S / m G r g m P d P n N s d\p s s n s Ġ r g / p M g ṙ Ṡ r N s d p M p G m r s d p ṁ / p g r r S B 1436

202 Compositions of various composers Appendix B R S / r ṇ ḍ p. s \ Ṇ r s G / p M / d p \ M m / p g r S / r ṇ ḍ p. S d p Ṡ n ṙ ṡ Ṁ p g r ṡ / r N s d p m / p g r s r S 4. / p M g r ṣ n / r r s ṇ ḍ p / r n ḍ p. s ṇ ḍ p. ṇ s r s ṇ s g r G m p d p m /d p ṗ d p m p d p m / d p m / d m / p g m / p g r S / r ṇ ḍ p. P s m \G r g m P d P n N s d P ṡ s n ṡ G r ġ / p M p g ṙ S N s d p M p g r S ṡ n d p m / p g r r n s caraṇam m p m g M ī rē yi mo da ṭi jā e ṭṭa ya p /M d d P rē yaṁ ḍa la lō mu vē ḷa pu rī ni la yā d N p D p m yi llu te mu ddu gu ṁ yi ṭṭta ṭṭu p d p m p g / m R li ya ka nī vu ṁma nu gū ḍi jū ce ta vu s s r ṇ s ḍ p. kō ri mru mu ddu lā ye ṭṭa ppa s S g r G ccu va lē ḍi na ma hā rā jā g g m p d p m pā ri va ci nne lu ko ṁ ku pa m p g m R S cci nā pū te li se rā ṭṭa ku rā s D P M mā ru bā ma dana lā ga ṭṭi gu p d p m /p m R S pa ki nī hi ri mī ri bba la mī da s ṇ s m g p m ma na su ca va cci nā gō ru lu ṁ ca d P n ṡ ṙ Ṡ lla ga jē si du cī ra bō ku s n ṡ ṙ ṡ /ṁ ġ mī ri kau va da liṁ ca ma ṭṭu kā ṙ Ṡ r n ṡ d p d gi li ṁ ci na va ccē vu du rā nī p d/ n n n ṡ d p d mō ḍi nē va ddu pō va cci B 1437

203 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n n d p m / p g r s kā du ra pō rā ye du ru jū ci ni B.11 tāna varṇam tōḍi rāga aṭa tāḷa Pallavi Gōpālayyar pallavi g m D n s n ka na kā ā ā ṁ Ṡ S d n ṡ s n d d n d p m g gī ī nī i i i i i i i ce e e e M g m / d D ē e e e li d p d n \D n s i i i mi i i n d p m g r s r : /d d p m p g /p m g m g r i i i kō o o o ri : gā ā ā ā ā ā ā ā ā ā ā ā s ṇ ḍ Ṇ ḍ ṇ s s G g M d d /n n / ġ r ā ā ci i i i i yu u u ū u u u u u u s s n n d p p m u u u u u u u u g r s r g m p g u u u ṁ nna a di i ṁ g S ra a a : S : : anupallavi / ṡ n d p m g m p d n / m g da a na a a du u u u u ḍai ai / pm/ d dm g rs mgm\s ṇ s/ d dpm ai ai aiaiainaaa śrī i i tu tuu ḷaa a a /n Ṇ d d /ṙ s n jē ē e e ṁ dru u d p d n Ṡ / ṙ r u u u u ni i i B 1438

204 Compositions of various composers Appendix B ṡ s n n d d p m : d m p d n ṡ ṙ d /r s / R i i i i i i i i : ta a na a a a a yu u u u d d /g g r r /g d / m g r r / g r r ṡ / r ṡ s n ḍai ai ai ai na a a a śa a ra a bhō o o o ji i i i ẇ /g r s n d /n / S ma a a a hā ā rā n d d p m g G jē e e e e e ē g r s ṇ ḍ ṇ s r ṁ dra a a a a a a muktāyi svaram G m p g m / d D d g m P m g r / m g r S/ g r n \D d n s r n r S d g r M m / p m M g g / n d m g r \N s r g m d g r m g n s g m d d n d d n n s s r / n r S r n s d n d / g r s n d /m g ṙ g r ṡ n D m g r s n D n s r caraṇam m m G r ma gu va a s r g r a a a a m g M m /p m m G / m g r r / g r rō o o o o o o o o o o o o o r s / r s n d D o o o o o o o d g r r G o o o o o g m o o /d ḋ m g r s r g : : m m G r s r g r o o o o o o o o : : ma gu va a a a a a B 1439

205 Compositions of various composers Appendix B d g r r / G o o o o o svaram r s \Ṇ N n s s ṇ \D ṇ S ḍ n s r ṇ r S ṇ ḍ N n s r g s / r r r s ṇ \ Ḍ D ṇ s r r g s / r n \D d / r ṇ ḍ g r s R G m g m d d n d n s /R n ṡ d / N d m p M g r s n \S ḍ ṇ s r g ṡ r ṙ n r s s n d p m g M p d n ḋ ṙ ḍ g r M d n s r g m g /D g m /D d d n n n r S /g ṙ n \D g m d m g r d g ṙ ṙ g 4. g m n \D d g m d \M g n g M g r s r g \S /r n s ḍ Ṇ g r r G d n s r g m g /D n d /ġ ṙ \n n d d d M g / n d m g r ṇs r g 5. D N p d n p d n n n d p d n s\n N n d / r r s s n d / ġ ṙ ġ \S r n s d N /r r ṡ ṡ n n d d p B 1440

206 Compositions of various composers Appendix B p m g m / D / n d / s n d p g m / p m g r s r g m p/ m p g m d d n d n n s d n s r ṡ ṙ ġ ṙ g /m g r n ṡ ṙ / g r s d n s n d / ġ \ṙ n d m g r s ḍ ṇ s r g 6. n n n d n s r ṡ n n n d / n d d m g m d n \D n D m g m / d d m g r s / m g r s n d g r g g m d n s ṙ n S S:: / r s n d p m g m /d d m g / m g r s r g s r ṇ s ḍ ṇ s r g m p d g m p d n ṡ ṙ ṡ n s d / G ṙ n d d / ṙ r n d m g / g r S R g m m G r ma gu va a s r g r a a a a m g M m /p m m G / m g r r / g r rō o o o o o o o o o o o o o r s / r s n d D o o o o o o o d g r r G R o o o o o o R S o B.12 kīrtana tōḍi rāga ādi tāḷa Pallavi Gōpālayyar pallavi ṡ ṙ ṡ n d n a ṁ ba nā du viṁ nna pa mu vi ni naṁ Ṡ n d p m g M B 1441

207 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n d p m g / d p m nnā da ri ṁ cu ḍa g r s n d d n d ki di sa ma ya ma ṁ ṁ /g \R r r s n / S mmā ā S S S S S anupallavi d n ṡ n d p m \ g r s m g M m s r aṁ ṁ bu ja pā ṇi vā ṇī ma ra ka m g m / d p d / n ṙ tā ṁ gi mā ta ṁ ṡ n n d / N s s gi ma dhu ra bhā ṣi ṇi n \ D n s s S ṙ ġ ṙ ṡ n \ D n s śā ṁ bha vi śa śā ṁ ka va da nē śi va /g ṙ ṡ n d / ṙ s n śa ṁ ka ri tri bhu n d p m m d d n va na su ṁ da ri ja ga caraṇam P p g m p d n d p p m g r s vā rā hi vai ṣṇa vi su ma ṁ ga li śū li ni pu rā ṇi tri tā pa śa ma ni bha ṁ ḍa ma hi ṣā *di na va ma da vi /r s /r n / s s ḍ ṇ vā mi ni ni ga mā sō ma sū ryā bha ṁ ja ni ni raṁ s r g m p d n ṡ ga ma sa ṁ cā ri ṇi gni lō ca ni va ra ka ja na ma*nō nma ṇi n \D / N ṗ Ṡ ṙ ġ ṙ ṡ n n d n s śrī rā ja rā jē śva ri vi ma la pā li ni na ta ja na bha ya vi dā ri ṇi pā ṁ ḍa va sa hā yu ḍai na vē ṁ ka ṭa /ġ ṙ ṡ n d / ṙ s s ci nma yā na ṁ pra ṇa va paṁ ja ra pa ti sa hō da ri n d p m g d d n da dā yi ni tri ja ga ni ni vā si ni ja ga tri kū ḍa vā si ni B 1442

208 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.13 kīrtana kāmbhōji rāga miśra jāti ēka tāḷa Pallavi Gōpālayyar pallavi d /r ṡ n d p ha ri sa rva pa d / n n d p d ri pū rṇa sa na ṡ p /ṡ n d d kā di mu ni vi p m g r /p m nu ta ca ra ṇa ma g \ r s ṇ p ḍ. hā nu bhā s s s / g r g g va na nu brō va / m g / m r / g r va yya /p m g \ r S a a /r s ṇ p Ḍ. a a S a S S anupallavi \ n d p m g m du ri ta mu le p m p d m p lla ne ḍa bā pu d d ṡ n d d p du va nu cu bi ru m g m d ṡ ṡ du va hi ṁ ci na \ n d ṡ r g ṁ ka ri rā ja va ṙ / gṡ /ṙ d ṡ ra da śrī vē ṁ s n d d /r ṡ n ka ṭa ra ma ṇa bha n d p m g m p vā bdhi ta ra ṇa caraṇam d d d d d / n n ni ra ti ś yā ma da na mō vi ja ya vē ṁ d P m p d naṁ da sa da ha nāṁ ga suṁ da ka ṭa gi ri vā ṗ p /n n d d n nā maṁ rā ma sā ra vi kō d P m g m da rō ddha ra ṇa tta cā ṇū ra ṭi saṁ kā śa m p /d \p p \m ni śi ca ra ga ṇa ma lla kaṁ vi ma la ci tra g g r s g r g \r ma da vi bhaṁ ja sa ma dhu mu ra ha sa kha na vi lā B 1443

209 Compositions of various composers Appendix B r G \S r s na tri bhu rā vā sā sva ṇ p D s s va na mō ha na ri dhi ga bhī ra sva pra kā śa s /n d d p m da ra ha si ta va sa da ya hṙ da ya bhu ja gēṁ dra śa g m P /d m da na kuṁ da ra ka ru ṇā va ru ya na nata ja na d d / N d p da na dī na ja ṇā la ya sa pō ṣa ṇa maṁ \M g p d ṡ nā rtthi ha ra ṇa kala su ra va ra ju bhā ṣa ṇa \ n d s r g m ha ra cā pa vi sa ra si ja da ḷa pu ru hū ta nu ṙ /ġ ṡ /ṙ d s kha ṁ ḍa na bra ṁ nē tra su ca ta ca ri ta ka ma \ N d /ṙ ṡ ṅ mā di su ra va ri tra va su nī ya gu ṇa ga d p m g m p ra hi ta ka ra ṇa dā ka ḷa tra ṇā bha ra ṇa B.14 kīrtana kalyāṇi rāga tiśra jāti ēka tāḷa Pallavi Gōpālayyar pallavi d d n ṡ n d ma hi ṣā su /s n \ d p m p d ra ma rdda ni bha \ N D ṙ n vā ni pa d p g m g r s ra ma pā va ni r \ṇ s R r mā taṁ gi g g r g /m p / d tri pu ra su ṁ da m / p g r s s n d ri na nu brō va R vē R S anupallavi g m p / d m / p g r a hi śa ya nu ḍa g s g r g g vai ve la yu g / p m p p / n d p ā di vē ṁ ka B 1444

210 Compositions of various composers Appendix B p m g m p d n ṭa sa hō da ri d n ṡ ṙ ṡ /ġ ma hā kā r s r \ d n ṡ ḷi śa ṁ ka ri ku / r ṡ n d / n d p mā ra ja na d n \M p d N p ni gī rvā ṇi caraṇam d /ṡ n p m /d p p m pa ti ta pā a ja pu raṁ śa ra ṇā ga m g / p m p d va ni kā ra ṇi da ra śu ka sa na ta ra kṣa ṇa śa p d g g p m p bha ṁ ḍā su kā di vi nu śā ṁ ka va da d s g / m g r s ra vi dā ra ṇi ta ca ri tē nē śā ṁ bha vi ṇ s r r s g na ta ja nā vi ja ya vai pa ra ma sa dā g g p m p n rtti bha ṁ ja ni bha va dā yi ni śi va śa ṁ ka ri d p m g /d p nā rā ya vi ṣṇu rū pra ṇa va rū pi /n n D D d ṇī ni ṇī ṇī n ṡ n d p m / p g ra ti śa ya maṁ ra ja ta gi ri ni ma ra ta kā ṁ m P d n \p ju bhā ṣi ṇi ni vā si ni na va gi su maṁ ga li / d p d n /ṡ d rā ma yi ni ra tna ma ya ma ma nō nma ṇi ma n ṡ n r s s tya ka lyā ṇi ku ṭa bhū ṣa ṇi dhu ra bhā ṣi ṇi n d n s / r r ṡ a ti ma nō ni ja gha nā va ra da vē ṁ ka / ġ r ṡ ṡ n d / n ṡ jña vi lā si ni na ṁ ṁ da ga ma ṭa sa hō da ri /ṙ ṡ n d / n d p a li ku la vē nī ya ka ru vā mi yā d / n d p m p d n \p ṇi śu ka pā ṇi ṇā pā ṁ gi di vā rā hi d n n ṡ n) ma hi ṣā ) B.15 kīrtana kalyāṇi rāga tiśra jāti ēka tāḷa Kuppusāmayyā pallavi B 1445

211 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n d n ṡ ṙ Ṡ nī kē n d p m p d da ya tō ci ka n /ṡ d /n d p p ru ṇi ṁ ci brō m g m p d p tu va nu cu ni ṁ /n ṇ D /ṡ n nē ne Ra d p p m g m P d na ṁ ṁ mmi ti nē g m g r s ṇ s r s na ṁ mmi ti sā R S mī S anupallavi m /P m \g g i ka li d \ m \ g r s g yu ga mu na nu pra g / p m p m g tya kṣa dai m p /d d p /n n d va mu nī vē n /Ṡ ṡ ṡ gā ka ma n d p d d n ṡ re vva ru va ra n d n d p m p da vē ṁ ka ṭā \g g / p m p d n ca la ra ma ṇa caraṇam m /P p p d p mā na mu ū ra ka eṁ ta ni g m g R s r cē vi dya la nē bhra ma nu ba lgu du niṁ r r ṇ s g g g mē lu de li si ko ṁ ḍi ko ṁ nni ti ṁ da gā du /M /P m p brō cē ya pi dina mulu sa ṁ nā vya sa naṁ D n ṡ n mā ni ni sā ra mu baṁ ta yu d p p m g m p nē ne ccaṭa ni ja ma ni vē nī kē te lu su D bū sā na D n ṡ ni ve ri su yya lu n ṡ d n d p ta ki jū ci na kha mu gā na ka vi nu mi ka nī n ṡ ṡ s /r ṡ gā na ka nā ra ya viṁ ta la s /ġ ṙ ṡ n d n tī ya ni ko ra śrī ha ri ni ṁ vi śrī 7va ra da ṡ /ṙ r ṡ n d n ṡ gā ni du rā nnu ma di na mu bha vē ṁ ka ṭā n d m p d n sa la vī ḍi da ji ṁ pu cu ka ḍa ca la ra ma ṇa nē B 1446

212 Compositions of various composers Appendix B /Ṡ yā tō soṁ S ṙ *ṡ ni dhi va le ta mu n d p d n ṡ va ni ni nu ko ni na ni de li si ti ka nu ko nu pra ṇu d n ṡ n d p d n yā ḍe da pā ni nu mi ka mka na ti ṁ tu nu ti ṁ d p m g / p m p d ḍe da vē ḍe ta mu na ni ja mu tu bha ji ṁ tu nu B.16 kīrtana bhairavi rāga ādi tāḷa Kuppusāmayyā pallavi s / g r g / p m e kka ḍi ki /P / n d p po yye m g m / p m \ g r vē la la S nā S N nē S / n n d n ṡ \ n tā ḷa d p m p / n n ga la nā dp m\ g r s ṇs g r g / pm nī vipu ṭe kkaḍiki S nā anupallavi n d n d n d / N e kka ḍi ki n d n ṡ \ N po yyē n D p / d p vē vō p D \m / p m P / d p d i ṁ du va da / s N / ṡ d n na rō /Ṡ S nī vu \ N ṡ ṡ /ġ Ṙ ṡ ṡ N / n D D grakunamikkiri ya kkaratō nā d N /ṡ n n dp p ca kkare mō vi cu / n n d p P m m ru kkuninokki so m g r kki na g r \ n nī vu pu ) s ṭē B 1447

213 Compositions of various composers Appendix B caraṇam G r / g g r s / g r S r S r s ṇ ḍ aṁ da mai na si bbe pu pā li ṁ ḍla si mē ḍi mi ga la ha ṁ sa na ḍa la hau su ka la ka la na ci lu ka la pa lu ku la mu ddu ṇ s g R ṇ s yā ḍa gā jū mī ra gā mē gu lka gā prē /g g r g ḍa jā ra mē ma ji m p d P ḍa gā r gā lka gā n n d /r s \ n d d p d p d \ M p d ca ṁ du ru kā ni vo yyā ra pu pa yye da vā ṭa mi ga mṙni bō ṭi va le ko na ne la mi va rata vēṁ ka ṭa ra ma ṇu ṭanu cu n ṡ ė ṡ n d P jā ra mē ra mī kō ṭa mī ṭu jū na la si de li siso la m / n d P m M ra ci ru na vvu na ṭi ga kiṁ nne ra pali si ka lasi na bi kuvu g r s / g r \ n vvu cu nī vu pu kiṁ pu cu nī vi pu tō nī vi pu B.17 kīrtana darbāru rāga miśra jāti ēka tāḷa Kuppusāmayyā pallavi Ṙ Ṡ n ṡ r śrī veṁ ka n N s d d P ṭē śva ru ni D p m d p śrī pā da g G m R s mu lu na mmi \ N s R r ciṁ ta yē la / G M /d p jē sē ve g G m R R ma na sā S S p m p d pā p m r r m p m r m r s da mu lu naṁ mmi B 1448

214 Compositions of various composers Appendix B \ N s R r ciṁ ta yē la G M /d p jē sē ve g G m R R ma na sā S ā S S anupallavi D P p M bhā viṁ ci p D / N Ṡ pa di nā lgu d /Ṙ Ṡ n ṡ ṙ ja ga mu la n N s d p D ke lla nu d n ṡ Ṙ g Ṙ m ba tte mu ṙ Ṡ n n ṡ n ṡ ṙ li ppi ṁ cē n N s D P pa ti ta pā d d p p m p d n n ṡ va nu ṭai na n caraṇam p p P P mu ra ha ri pa ra ma bha ka li yu gā p P p m p ya ni ya lla ktu ḍai na tya kṣu d D P d p ka ri mo ra pra hḷā du ḍai pra tya g G / m R S li ḍa ga nu ko ra ku kam kṣa mai tē r \ N S R mu nu brō ci ba mu lō nu ka ḍa ma ye M m p d p na di vi na ṁ ḍive ḍa la mi nī gu g G g G / m \ R lē dā lē dā ma na sā R S ā ā ā S S s d d P p M ha ri ha ra a ra ma ra yē la mi bha p D / N Ṡ mu ra ha rī lē ka gō ktu la pā la d /Ṙ Ṡ n ṡ ṙ ya ni nī vu vi ṁ dā ya ve la si brō n N s d p D bha ji yi ṁ cu nu nī vu cu na ṭṭi d n s Ṙ / G m a pu ḍu brō a pu ḍu ga a la mē lmaṁ ṙ S n s n ṡ r ci na dai va lgi na ga ṁ ba ga sa mē tu n N s D P mi pu ḍē mi mi pu ḍē mi ḍai na śē B 1449

215 Compositions of various composers Appendix B d d p p m p d n n s lē dā lē dā ṣā va tā rā \ n B.18 kīrtana haṁvīru rāga tiśra jāti ēka tāḷa Kuppusāmi Ayyā pallavi ṡ n D p d ṡ rā dā nā s d p p m \ g g mī da da ya r g m R lē dā mo s m p d d p Ra li ḍa ga vi na : : : : n ṡ n D p d ṡ rā dā nā s d p p m \ g g mī da da ya g m R lē dā R S ā S S anupallavi d / ṡ n ṡ ṙ ġ / ṁ vā dā nī g Ṙ ṡ n d n Ṡ dā su ḍa śrī n d / s n \ D p va ra da vēṁ ka m G m p d ṙ ṭē śva ra vi na n / caraṇam g /m p / d p p pa ra ma pu ru ḍa sa ta ta mu cā sthi ra mu ga va ra g m m g / m \r r vi nu mu pa ti ta lā ma di ni ni mu la sa ṁ gē S R r s pā va na dī jaṁ bu ga naṁ dē va ra vī g g g / p m d p na ja nā va na mmi na ya la drau va nu cu nu śrī d / ṡ n ṡ Ṙ ġ / m ka ri mo rā li pa di mā na mu ha ri vara da g Ṙ ṡ n d n Ṗ ṁ ci na śrī gā ci na śrī ṁ ka ṭā dri ni B 1450

216 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n d / n p / n d ha ri ya ni ma Ri pa ti ga ti nī hā rā rā p m g m p d ṙ mo Ra li ḍa vi na va na gā vi na rā ya na vi na n / B.19 kīrtana tōḍi rāga tiśra jāti ēka tāḷa Kuppusāmayyā pallavi N ṡ ṙ n S nī sa ri sā n \D n s ṙ ṭi vē lpu la nu n Ṡ n \D n ṡ nē gā na ja s n d p m p m g r gā na ni ṁ S g m P nnē ne Ra naṁ d n d p m \ G m mmi ti ma hā nu d p p g r s ṡ bhā vā dē n d p m D d vā di dē va N ṡ r S nī s ri sā n ṭi d p p g r S bhā vā S S S anupallavi P d n d P śrī śa ca tu m p m p p m g m rda śa bhu va nā m / n d d d d dhī śa ra vi d n / ṡ n d p d kō ṭo sa ṁ / N ṡ ṙ g ṙ kā śa va ra da Ṡ n d n ṡ vēṁ ka ṭa gi ri ṙ n ṡ d n d vā sa ja ga dī p m g m p d śa ha ri ha ra caraṇam B 1451

217 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n ṡ n d p m gha na va na ni dhi vai śa va ṇā va ra gō va g m / d p m g r \ ṇ ma da śō ṣa ṇa nu ja śi kṣā rddha na gi ri dha ra s r g m g m ka ma nī ya va ra vi bhī vā li saṁ p d n \d d d mṙ du bhā ṣa ṇa ṣa ṇa ra kṣā ha ra mu ra ha ra p d n ṡ ṙ a nu pa ma kau bhū śrī nī pa ra ma da yā g ṙ s n d n ṡ stu pa bhū ṣa ṇa ḷā dhya kṣā ka ra śrī ka ra ṙ n ṡ d n d vi ni ha ta kha ra bu dha ja na sa ṁ va ra da vē ṁ ka p m g m p d dhū ṣa ṇa ha ri ra kṣā ha ri ṭē śva ra ha ri B.20 kīrtana kalyāṇi rāga tripuṭa tāḷa Śrīnivāsayyā pallavi S Ṡ S iṁ gā d ṡ \ D n / ṡ n \d n ṡ da ya rā ṡ n / ṡ d d N \P p m p dā nē d d / n d p p m g g g g r da la ci tē r g / p m p d n / ṡ n yi pu ḍai na d n d p p g g r g m p da ya rā m g g r S ṡ n dā nē d n ṡ p d n g g / p m / d d p m da la ci tē g r g / p m p d n ṡ n yi pu ḍai na d n d p p g g r g m p da ya rā m g g r S dā ā S anupallavi B 1452

218 Compositions of various composers Appendix B P d d p ōṁ kā ri n s n d / ṡ n Ṡ ṡ ṡ ha ri sō da ri n ṡ / ġ r ṡ ṡ n / ṡ d / n d p m ō ō a khi m p / n d lā p m g m p g r ṁ ḍē r śva s ri caraṇam ṇ s r r r r s g r /g g ra ja ta gi ri ve ḍa li nī vu o ka śu kra vā raṁ buna ni dē vi nī sa ṁ nni dhi yaṁ tu g m / d m g r g m p m /P ga ja va na mu na mo ra sē vu nno na ra ka sē vi ṁ ci na nu di na mu bha kti tō nu ṁ du p m p /D d p / d m p \ G g g bha ja na sē yu dī nu la pā li ṭi mi kku ṭa ma gu nā yu vu pu tru la dē va mu nu lu su ru la su ru lu nī r g r / p m p m g g g \R pā ri jā ta mai nā vū mē ṭi pa da ṁ ṁ ṁ bu la nu sē va ku la ni vi ni yu ṁ du ṙ d / n d D d d / ṡ n d / s n d tri ja ga nma yi śa ra ṇā ga tu ḍa ni a kka ra tō nō sa gu cu ja nu la nu ī va ga nī vū ra kē yu ṁ ḍi na p d p / ṡ n s d n ṡ n S te li si vē ga na nu brō vu ā da ri ṁ ci nā vi la lō yī śva ri niṁ nē ma ṁ du d n s rr ṡ r / g ṙ ṡ s n d p d a ja śa krā du la gā ci na ja ga ni kke mu gā pū ja lu sē yu cu mā vi ja ya raṁ gu ni sō da ri d /ṙ ṡ n ṡ d p d / n d p p p p m g r da ṁ bi kā pa rā ku jē se nē ne ṁ tō ni ṁ nnē go la ce da vau ja n ni nī ku nā ya ṁ g /g g r vu nu du B.21 kīrtana nāṭkurañci rāga ādi tāḷa Śrīnivāsayyā B 1453

219 Compositions of various composers Appendix B pallavi s /r g m / p g / m r / g s s niṁ nnu mi ṁ ci na s N s r / g vā re va r S ṇ ṇ ṇ d ra ṁ mmā ṇ ṇ ḍ ṇ s ṇ ḍ ṇ p ḍ / ṇ ni khi la lō ka ja na d ṇ ṇ S ṇ ṇ nī nī s r g / m g r vē s ṇ ya ṁ ḍ ṇ p. : : ḍ ṇ s ṇ ḍ ṇ s ṇ ḍ ṇ p. ḍ / ṇ bā ni khi la lō ka ja na S nī S S S anupallavi s s s / n d / n ḋ / n d a nni ṭi ki nu nī / n p D n s ṡ n d vē ya ti N ṡ ṡ ṡ kā ri s n / r ṡ ṡ n / s n d / n p d vai na mī na na ya / N / ṡ n nā n d \M a ṁ bā m g g / m g s s n śa ṁ ka ri ḍ ṇ caraṇam s r g m /p g / m r r g s s bhū mi śē ṣu ni ki ja la dhi ku ṁ bha saṁ vi ja ya gō pā lu ni s ṇ Ṇ s R / g yo ka ta la bha vu ni ki sō da rī r S ṇ / s ṇ ḍ mō pu lo ccu nī vu d ṇ / s ṇ ḍ / ṇ ḍ / ṇ p. bhō gi vi ṣṇu vā ja la dhi lō na ṇa ge nu vī ra śa kti vai d ṇ / r s ḍ ṇ ṡ ṡ ṇ ḍ ha nu ni ki ga nu pe nu ve la si yu ṁ n ṡ ṡ ṡ mō pu ci ccu d vu s s s /n d \m g m dā mō da ru ni ki ala vē da mu la ku baja naku ta ga na ṭṭe m D n ṡ ṡ n d dū rja ṭi ta nu ja ṭu pā li ṁ n ṡ ṡ ṡ prā pu no ccu cē vu s n /ṙ ṡ s n / n n d / n p d da gi na śi vu ni ko ka a na ka yē ṭu la nī pā ṁ ḍya rā ja ta na n /ṡ n n d \m di kku na sa ri ya na yā na nu m g g m g p kā va brō s n pu ccu vu B 1454

220 Compositions of various composers Appendix B ḍ ṇ B.22 kīrtana gaurii rāga ādi tāḷa Dorasāmayyā pallavi r r / p m / d p /ṡ n Ṡ r n d p m dhū ū rja ti na P d ti d p m g ṁ cē g \r R s nē pē s ṇ ṇ s / r p r r p m / ḍ d p m dō ṣa sa ma ya mu na g \r R r s s ṇ nu ṇ / S u ū anupallavi R m p /s n ṡ /ṙ s r ū rji ta mu ga ra ja r /g Ṙ ṡ tā dri ṡ n n Ṡ ko na na S ṡ ṡ n s \R r tyu nna ta mau va m p /d d jra maṁ ḍa p d d p m g \r s pa ṁ bu na caraṇam r r r r r r R r r r r r r r r su ra la su ru lu kiṁ nna ru li ru ga ḍa ko ni mu ra ha ru ḍati du ra mu na ḍa ma ru va pa lu va ra nū puru ma ṇu lu ca ra ṇa mu la gha lu r g \R s ṇ ṇ yā ki ṁ gha lla B 1455 s /S s ḍā naṁ dī pa na

221 Compositions of various composers Appendix B r m p d p d p ṡ n d p m g \ r s r śva ra ka ra va ra mu ra ja ra va mu tō sa ra sī ru ha bha vu pe da vu la da ra gā Ra ra kā la na da ru na su ru ni ki giṁ ḍe M p d gū ko ni pi jha d p m lla ṁ G r ḍā pa na R s r s r m p p / ṡ n Ṡ R r r r va ru sa kra ma mu gā nu bā gu ga na u ra ga mu la si yā ja ḍa nu nuṁ ma ru vai rī va ga nu su bra ṁ r r r / g ṙ ṡ n n gva ra sa ka na la tō ḍi vi dhu ja ṭi si nē mma ṇyu ni bā gu ga N Ṡ nu ḍā nu p /ṙ r r r ṙ R ṙ ṙ ṙ r / g R s da ru hā si ta mu gāṁ bu ru ha mu na mu ddu me ra yu cu na ra caṁ du ru ci Ru ve nne la ka ru ṇa nu ka ni kara mu na nu jū ci ka ru N Ṡ gā ra gāyā praṇa ṇiṁpa mē d d d p m g r s ci ru ce ma ṭa lū ra va nā tha mu mrō ya nu pu la ka ri ṁ pa B.23 kīrtana tōḍi rāga tiśra jāti ēka tāḷa Dorasāmayyā pallavi G r g r s ta tta dhri mi ta S ṇ s ḍ ṇ diddi ya ni sa s r g m D dā śi vu ḍā P d p m / g r r ḍi nē /G r g r s ta tta dhri mi ta S ṇ s ḍ ṇ didi ya ni sa B 1456

222 Compositions of various composers Appendix B S dā S S anupallavi G m d \M ci tta ma ṁ d n ṡ n ṡ ṡ ṡ da ri ki ga ra ga ṙ S / n n d p d ci tsa bha no ka n d m m / p m \ g r r kā ve tti caraṇam d d d p /D mo na si be kuṁ ḍa la tā da ya nu kō ri /ṙ ṡ n \ d p m bbu li tō lu ṭa ṁ ka ṁ pu lu su ra kō tlu pa p \ g m /d D mo la nu bi ga ku ni si yoga si da mu la vrā la n d n ṡ n \ D cu ṭṭi yā ḍa ga nu d n ṡ n d n ṡ ta na sa ri lē ni ṁ ḍu prē sa ma ya mi ti n d p m g p ra ni mā ru ma bha vā gā dā ya ni m g r n g g m ta sa ghu ni cē ni yu ga ppa ga śāṁ tu la brō / n D p p m g r s ba ṭṭi jū ḍa va ga nu d D d ma na su bū ni pu ṁ ḍa rī ka ja ya va ca naṁ d d d /ṙ ṡ n d p du ru su na nu ḍa na ya nu ḍu nu bu la nu pa taṁ m \ g m /D d ma ru ga me tti ppo ṁ gu ko ni ja li yu kolu va n d n ṡ n \ D go ṭṭi pā ḍa ga nu a bhi S d ġ r ṡ a na ya ma pa ka ṁ ḍa nu ḍau na ya mu tō nu n d d n Ṡ smā ru ni tā hā yiṁ ko ga su braṁ mma ṁ n ṡ n d p d na Ra kā la sā ri ya nu cu ṇya vi nu tu ḍiṁ n ṡ n d p m m p m g r r me ṭṭi vē ḍa pu ga nu B 1457

223 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.24 svarajati tōḍi rāga ādi tāḷa Śyāmā Śāstri eḍuppu N / r s ṇ ḍ p. rā vē hi ma gi ri ku Ḍ / s ṇ \Ṃ / Ḍ Ṇ mā rī kaṁ s \ ṇ / R s ṇ /r ci kā mā kṣi va ra S dā ma na vi ni S S ṇ ḍ ṇ s r / G s / r ṇ /S na vaṁ mma śu bha mi S ṇ / G R ṇ ṁ mma mā ya ṁ mma \ Ġ / s ṇ N D r ṇ rā vē mā yaṁ mma ḍ ṇ s r d r /G G g / m g r s ṇ na ta ja na pa ri pā li ni va nu cu / R naṁ R ḍ ṇ mmi ti s r / G R ṇ ni sa dā brō va \ m \g r ss r s ṇ \ Ḍ ṇ s r ma da ma tta ma hi ṣa dā na va ma ss ṇ s r S rdda ni ve ta dī s ḍ ṇ s r / g ṛ ṇ rcca ve du ra mu ga nu \ G m P g m /D n d m g m kā ma pā li ni nī vē ga ti ya ni \ G r S r g / kō ri ti ko ni S s r \ Ṇ ṇ s yā ḍi ti vē ḍi ti \ 4. G m P m g m /D n d m \ G kā mi tā rttha pha la dā ya ki ya nē g r g r S ḍi bi ru dī r ma g s / R r ṇ s hi lō nī kē ta gu \ B 1458

224 Compositions of various composers Appendix B 5. g m n d m g m d m g /d M g r ṇ ka m la mu khi da ra ga ḷa gha na lī la ka ca ḍ G s r ṇ S bha rā mṙ ga vi lō g r ṇ ḍ g r G ca na ma ṇi ra da nā : : : : m \ g r ṇ \Ḍ g m p g m g /D n ga ja ga ma nā ma ti lō ni nu sa dā d d ġ ṙ n \ D p la cu ko ni nī tyā p m \ G R s na mē ta lli \ 6. D d n n n d n s n /R R ṡ śyā ma kṙ ṣṇa nu ta vi nu tā ciṁ ta n Ṡ S n \ D nu vē vē ga dī d n / s n d p \ M rcca bha ya mi yya vē M P /D / s N S r \ N ka lyā ṇi kaṁ ci kā n /Ṡ n \ D p mā kṣi nī pā p m \ G R s da mē di kku \ B.25 kīrtana tōḍi rāga ādi tāḷa Mātṙbhūtayyā pallavi n ṡ ṙ Ṡ n D ta ra li bo yyē n d p m sa ma ya mu \g g p R na nu pra S ṇ n Ḍ S ṇ tya kṣa mai ra / G m / d p kṣiṁ pa va g m g g R yya B 1459

225 Compositions of various composers Appendix B S a anupallavi p d p \ m p p \ g m pa ra ma pu ru ṣa ja ga p d n ṡ n dī śā \s d d \m sa ka la d / s n ṡ ṡ S / r s \n bha va bha y du kkha vi N n d n nā n ṡ n d d d śā na nnu d p d n ṡ ṡ n d d ma ra va va la du tri śi / ġ ṙ ṡ ṡ ra gi ri ni / ẇ r ṡ ṡ n n d d ve la si na ẇ n ṡ ṙ ṡ n Ṡ n d d mā tṙ bhū tē /ṡ n d p m śā ī \ g m p d jī vu ḍu caraṇam d D p p p p nē jē si na ya pa pa ṭṭu pa ṭṭu ka bali mi do la gi saka P m / n n d p rā da ṭṭu ko ṭṭa lē ṁ m \ G m p kō ṭu lu sē yu nu dri ya vyā p p / n p p m g r s nī ma di lō na sa bha ṭu la nu ni gra pā ra mu lo ḍi gi na S r g g hi ṁ hi ṁ pa M M ci ni ci ypka ṭlā g m p d n n n d n ṡ r vyā ja ka ru ṇā pa ṭṭu na cē pa pa lu mā ru nā ṡ s n d p m mū rti ṭṭi mu kti ta la pu na m \g / m g r s vai na di ne sa gē nī pā da ṇ ṇ \Ḍ ṇ S ni ja mai tē ma ṁ pa ṭṭu ko ṁ mma va ni bha ja na mu jē sē s ṇ G g m / d m nni ṁ ye ṁ ṭa p m G ci ci ṭlā g R s d D P p g m iṁ kā ja nma mu gha ṭṭi ga ni nnu na ṁ ye la mi bha kti ga lu d li ppi ṁ mmi nā ga jē m / d p n n \d d ca ka na nu nu na nnē sē ya la d B 1460

226 Compositions of various composers Appendix B d n ṡ ṡ S / n Ṡ n kā lu ni cē nō kā pā ḍu du va ni pā pu la ta la te ga N \d n ppiṁ ca ka nē kō n Ṡ n \ D nu nu si d D p d / s N ṡ ṡ ō ja ga dra kṣa ka ma ṭṭu mī ra ma ra ma la si so la si du rā p d /ġ ṙ ta ru ṇa mu ṇa bhra ma va stha ṡ n d p na nu pra ṇa mā ṭa lu la cē nā n ṡ ṙ ṡ n ṡ ṡ n d d vō pa dē śa mo na a ṭṭe bu ṭỵu go yā sa mo ṁ di ka ṁ / n ḍ p m ri ṁ ci ṭṭu gā ṭi di ku ṁ di \ g m p d jī bu ḍu jī vu ḍu jī vu ḍu B.26 kīrtana sāraṅga rāga ādi tāḷa Mātṙbhūtayya pallavi s S p P p m u mā hi mā ca la p / n d n ṡ ku mā ri n \ d p m i ka nī p p /n d p m r g m p d a mā na me va raṁ p m r g m \r mmā \ S S anupallavi s Ṡ s /ṡ ṡ s n ku mā ra ja na ni ni ṡ ṙ / g ṙ ṡ s nu mā na ṡ n / ṡ d d p m jā la ne p p /d n ṡ s n / s d d p m su mī na nē tri vai na p d / n d p su ga ṁ p m dhi d p p m r /g n s ku ṁ ta lā ṁ ba caraṇam s s s s p p p p p p p p p p p m e la mi ni te li ka lu pa lu ku nu do ra ya ku ā na ya mu ni nu na ṁ nni na nā pai ni pa ma ga ni sa ga mu mē nui go li na pa ṁ ga ru B 1461

227 Compositions of various composers Appendix B p n d n ṡ sō rā ci n ṡ \ d p m mu ni kā ma na vi lka pā p p / n d d p P p / d p m m r g g ge lu va ga li gi na vva la re ḍu ca kka ni vi ni vi na na ṭlā yu ṁ nnā vē mō gu ga ra ka mu la ni bha ktu la pai kṙ pa g m p /d p m r mō lē ji s g m \r \s mu naṁ du kā nī vi lga ō tri śi r s s s s /s ṡ ṡ ṡ s S ṡ ṡ s n ce lu va gu ka stū ri ti la kaṁ ba ma ri na ṭlo ri ni ṁ ci na di ta kku va nī kē ra gi ri ni vela si di vau mu ddu la ṡ / g ṙ r ṡ s mō gā gu s n / s d d p p m mu ye ṁ dani kā ni nu kā lka nī p d n ṡ r ṡ S ṡ n / s d d p p ṡ de lu pu du na ṁ mmā nē to li jē si na da nu vā re va raṁ mmā bhu vi pa si ḍi śa ya ka ṇi ta ka lyā ṇa *gu ṇa mu le ṁ da ni N s d nō lā ba d p p m /d d p m r d mu aṁ ba ka aṁ ba lka ō s s s s / ṠS s s S s s Ṡ s n pa la mu na nī ve nā pe nni dhi gaṁ ḍi ni ke na ya ku nī sa ṁ nn dhi nē gaṁ ḍi ni ja ga dī śva ri nē nd nta ṭi vā ḍa nu s s s / g ṙ s s n pa lu ma ru vi ṁ ṭi ni ye va rē ma ni nā ca la ga jū ḍu mu / s n / s d d p p m ci ṁ ta li kē ṭi ki nē vi na na ṁ ṭi ni na7nu kṙ pa tō ḍa nu p d ṡ n s n ṡ R s n d d p p m to la ge nu du ri taṁ bu lu nā nā ṭi ki na nu cē vi ḍu vaku ma ni vē ḍgo ṁ ṭi ni i ka nā ma di lō pa la ni nu vī ṭa nu B 1462

228 Compositions of various composers Appendix B p d n s s / d p m ta lu pu lu cē ku nā nā ga tu la nu i ta ra rdi va mu la / n d p m m r g m re na mu ṁ mmā ṭi ki ni nu ca ra ṇa ṁ ṭi ni ga ni go ni yā ḍa nu ṗ P p P p m u mā hi mā ca la u mā hi mā ca la u mā hi mā ca la B.27 kīrtana ānandabhairavi rāga ādi tāḷa Meraṭṭūr Vēṅkaṭarāma Śāstri pallavi s / r s / r s \ṇ Ṇ Ṇ ka ṁ ṁ nna ta ṇ ṇ S / m g g r r lli r g m g m niṁ nnu P P d p d P m g m g m p naṁ mi na ṁ \m g m / p m g r du S S kō \ s Ṇ m m P m g r gā si ba S ḍ ṇ dē di ṇ ṇ s g r / p m nyā ya g r / G \S g m mā nē P m / p m nu yā m g g r s la : : : : \ s Ṇ m m P m g r gā si bi S n n dē di ṇ ṇ s g r / p m nyā ya g r G mā ā G G \ S ā S S S S anupallavi g m P p m p ce ṁ nnu gā n p p s \n da kṣi /Ṡ ṡ ṇa kā B 1463

229 Compositions of various composers Appendix B ṡ n / ṡ n n d d / s N n ṡ n ṡ ṙ śī sva yaṁ r s n n ṁ bu ṡ / r ṡ n d kā P / n mi p d P m ni m / dp p m g : : g m P P / n : ce ṁ nnu mi ni p d P m \ G g m g m g m p P pa ṁ nna gā p p Ṡ bhū n ṡ /ṙ ṡ n d p / n \P ṣa ṇi p m g g m g m P / d p m / p m bha v nī m g g r śa ṁ r g g m ṁ m g g r S ka ri svaram sāhityam ṇn s \ Ṇ s ṇ s g r g / m g r S i lanu nī du mahimalu vi ni vininē ṇ S g pu rā ṇi R g g nī va ni /M / d p m g r saṁ nni dhi ni pu ḍu : : : : g m g / p m/ d p m g r g m p d p s kanugova va la neni manamuna dalaci nē s ṡ ḍu p d m P p ka ru ṇa jū ḍu g r g m m g r ma nu cu vē ḍu ko ni s ṇ g m g m p m g r S ṇ ṇ ṇ na nu ka ṁ nna ta /S lli caraṇam n s M m / p m i ta ru la m g g r vē r g g m m g g r r / g r ḍa S S / r r Ṇ nu ṇ ṇ dha S / g g r r ra ṇi / G / M lō nu M g m P P ī śva rī m p / d p / d P m te li m / d p p pi m g r g nā /M M M \g nu g ni g m /d p m / p m ja mu m g g r eye gā nu B 1464

230 Compositions of various composers Appendix B S s ṇ S s ṇ s ga ti ī vē s s Ṡ ya ni / ẇ r Ṡ n n d / N nā ṡ n Ṡ S S ṡ7\n nu ne ṁ N ṡ ṙ ṡ n d mma ti P n p / d P m tō nu \ G g m P p ka ru ṇiṁ pa m p /odud p / d P m sa ma m / d p p m g g g ya mi dē /M M M /g nu g g m vē p / d p m / p m ḍu ko ṁ m g g r S nnu nu g m g m p m g r S ṇ ṇ ka ṁ ṁ nna ta / S lli B.28 kīrtana kalyāṇi rāga aṭa tāḷa Mātṙbhūtayyā pallavi ṙ ṡ Ṡ ka nu ko S N n ṡ n d ni pā N pa Ṡ nī s n \D / n d mu ktu p m p g R la ma g m yyē g m p d mu n s n : : r s S : ka nu ko S ni g m yyē g m p d mu N d / n d p gau rī p m p \ g R śa po ḍa g r g jū / d m / p g pa B 1465

231 Compositions of various composers Appendix B g g R R vē S S s S S anupallavi g m p d N ma na si p D p d /S n d ja vai N ri s n ṡ yai S n d N tri śi ra Ṡ ṙ Ṡ gi ri ni n d n ve la \S yu d D N mā tṙ Ṡ ṙ Ṡ bhū tē n ṡ n d śva p m p ra d n Ṡ s nī s n / ṡ d pā / n d p \g g r da ka ma la g m mu p d n s d ṙ ṡ Ṡ u u ka nu go S ni caraṇam s r G va ḍi gā di na ka pa ra gi G g G śrī pa ti na mē ru G ā ṭi da R di saṁ na g G d p va rā ha kā śu vi llu gā p m p \d / p m /d p rū pa ṭa va gu ko ni ye \g g mu cu R na na kku g r r / m g va cci ve ta rtta na mu jē pe 7ṭṭi me r s r s r ki na pā da si na pā da ṭṭi na pā da s ṇ s ka ma ka ma ka ma r r la mu la mu la mu G m P p lē e lē e lē e \G p m p D p ē dī i ē dī i ē dī i P ī ī ī P B 1466

232 Compositions of various composers Appendix B P m g M ja ṭi ya ce na ṭi ga ri ma P d n \D ku ma ni yai na mī ra N mā rā pha Ṡ rkkaṇ va ṇi N n d ṭē yu ṇu ni rā p m p / m g / p m / d p ni kai ma ta ma ṇa ka ju nu nū \g g me ra ṭa pu ra g r si ku mu s \ n s R ya mu ni da śi kha ri da gā nu dā g g G g nni na pā da nni na pā da lci na pā da m p ka ma ka ma ka ma /d d p p l mu la mu la mu \g g r g g / p m lē e e lē e e lē e e g /m / p \g G r e e dī e e dī e e dī R ī ī ī S ī ī ī S m p / d p m pu ḍa mi ka nu ḍai a ra ya va m g m /P p si ṣṭā na hi ma ja laṁ da d N va ṁ rā \D di tu su p d p /Ṡ mu nu la cē ḍa gu mā ru ni jaṁ n \D n s ṙ r ṡ pū ma pā pu ṭa ku Ṡ ja la yaṁ S lu cē tra n d d /ṡ \ n ba ḍa yu mu ka ḍi gi mro ma ma la vrā n r r D d ddu la pā da kki na pā da si na 7pā da n d ka ma ka ma ka ma p p la mu la mu la mu d / p N \D lē ē lē ē lē ē D s n s R ṡ dī dī dī S ī ī ī S S d d N ka ḍa gi va na jā sthi ra mu Ṡ R bhi kṣā sa nā gā mā s r ḍa du la tṙ n ġ na ku pū ṡṙ /ġ ṙ ṡ s n s mu na ku va śa mu gā tē śva ra ṡ /ṙ ṡ n ṡ \D bā gu nī ya pa ḍai śrī N m i smā tri Ṡ ra runi śira B 1467

233 Compositions of various composers Appendix B s n ṡ /g r \s ve ḍa li na ḍa gi ni si dro gi ri ni ne la s n N n ci na pā da kki na pā da ko nna pā da / ṡ d ka ma ka ma ka ma p m la mu la mu la mu g p m p7d n lē e e lē e e lē e e s r s s / r ṡ n d e dī e dī e dī p d a a a n s a a a d n d r /ṡ a a ka nu a a ka nu a a ka nu B.29 kīrtana kēdāragauḷa rāga ādi tāḷa Māṙbhūtayyā pallavi m P s n d p śaṁ bhō pu ra ma da p /n m p / N śa ma na vi Ṡ S bhō s ṙ Ṡ ṡ n n d p m śa śi rē kā va taṁ sa ṡ \ n d p su gaṁ dhi kuṁ m / d p m g r ta ḷa nā tha s r /g s r s śrī m P śaṁ bhō caraṇam r m p /n d /n p / n D p m g r m p la li ta gu ṇa mu ni va dhū ja na su kha da vi /n n d D p D lā sa vā sa va p P m G r g stu tāṁ bu ja pa da s r /g s r s bha ya ha ra śi va B 1468

234 Compositions of various composers Appendix B m P P śaṁ bhō s n r Ṡ \N dē hi mē bha śāṁ bha vī aṁ R s s n d d p ktiṁ tva yi du ri ta vi sē vi ta nu ta pa da /d d p m g r m P P dā ra ṇa śi va śaṁ bhō śaṁ ka ra śi va /aṁ bhō N Ṡ ṙ gġ ṙ s rr ṡ n s ṡ n ya kṣā dya kṣa su pa kṣa ri pu kṣa ya phā lā kṣa na la śi kṣa ta ma sma tha r rṙ ṡ sṡ n da kṣa da kṣa śi kā la tū la kī nn D n P kṣa ka kṣa ya la nī la kaṁ m p kṣa ṇa dha ra n n / s n d p bha ya ha ra śi va bha ya ha ra śi va m P P śaṁ bhō śaṁ bhō ṙ Ṡ ṡ\ 6. gaṁ gā dha 7. śu ddha spha n \D p m /d dha ra tuṁ ga ṭi ka śu bhra p m g r /r /m /P P pu ṁ ga va śa ṁ bhō vi gra ha śa ṁ bhō 8. s / D p m g r \ S r /g s r s n d p vā ra ṇa ma da dā ra ṇa ca ṇa pha ṇi ma ṇi / s N s r s r /M bhū ṣa ṇa su ra cā g r ra ṇa m p /N d p ga ṇa pō ṣa ṇa : : : : n n ṡ s r r /ġ r Ṡ /r s n n /ṡ n va ra mu ni sa mu da ya sē vi ta śri ta ja na Ṙ ṙ Ṡ ṡ pā ri jā ta N mā n D / n P m p tṙ bhū ta saṁ ta ta n n /ṡ n d p \ /P S dhṙ ta di na ka ra śaṁ bhō m g \ o ō /g r \ S o ō B.30 kīrtana paraju rāga tripuṭa tāḷa Vaikuṇṭha Śāstri pallavi s /G M / d p śrē ya sē m m m G s /g dhyā s r \ṇ ṇ s r g yā mi rā ma ṁ r g B 1469

235 Compositions of various composers Appendix B g : : m d p d p m g r : bhū ya sē m p m g m G e e G \R S ē ē S anupallavi D n S S tō ya da n ṡ ṙ ṡ n d p m g m śyā ma ḷa ṁ ṁ ṁ p d n ṡ : : ṙ n ṡ S ṁ : : tō ya da n ṡ ṙ ṡ n D P śyā ma ḷa d n d d dp/ d P m M kā ya maṁ g m/ dpm g m/ pm g r s bhō ru ha ruci / m G m p d n ṡ rā ya tā ru ṇa /r Ṡ n d d /ṙ vi lō ca na ma dhu S s n d p m rā dha ra smi ta g m/d p m g m/pm g m g r śaśi mu khaṁ h.r di r s \ caraṇam g m P p m p d sa ra sō pī tā ṁ va na mā p m / p m g r G tsa va śrī ba ra sa ṁ li naṁ śrī g g m P p m p d sā kē ta vī ta ka va tsa kau p m /p m g r G tu ja na ga rē ṭi ta laṁ sthu bha dha raṁ g g g m /d p / d m śa ra di ṁ du pri ya da rśa vai ku ṁ ṭha g m/dpm dhava nā na ga g m/pm ḷā laṁ rā g rsṇ ṇ Ṇ s r g r g ca la sau dha kri ya rū pa vāsa ṁ śu bha g m /d p m g m G śi kha rē ma ma laṁ ya śa saṁ \R S S s /g g M p d su ra bhi ka vā ta jā gha na gaṁ bhī n d n ṡ n d /n d p lpa la tā bja ka ra ra ma dhu ra p p /ṡ Ṡ S śō bhi maṁ vā si ca ka lyā ṇa n n d d n d /n d ṭa pā ṁ ta rē p ra ṇa yu ga ḷa ṁ mṙ du va ca sa.m p p p /Ṡ S su ra vi mā va ra bō dha ka ṁ da rpa n ṡ ṙ ṡ n \D p ṡ nē ra tna mu drā mō ha na B 1470

236 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n D p d p m va ra dī pa da ra ha sta ka ma nī ya g m /dpm pra cu ka ma ma ha g m / pmgr s rē l aṁ sa ṁ s s s M \ g m su ru ci rā ga ru dhū ta ka lu ṣa va a nu pa mā dbu dha P d p d p d dhū pa mṙ ga ma da si ṣṭa mu kha mu ni vi naya śu bha gu ṇa p d d p m p D vā sa nē pū ji taṁ vā ri dhiṁ m P p m g m ma ṇi ga ṇa ka ma la ja a cyu ta P d P P suṁ da ra sva dhū rja ṭi va makhi la vē dāṁ S ṡ ṡ ṡ p /ṡ rṇa ma ya su kha siṁ jri mu ka su ra gaṇa ta sā ra ṁ ka ru s n Ṡ N d /n d mhā sa nē s.m nnu ta ṁ ṇā ni dhi ṁ S S s P sā saṁ sa n s ṙ Ṡ n ṡ bha ra ṇa yā ta ru jā ta vi sma ya jja nada saṁ bhu va ṙ Ṡ n d p ṡ ṇa yā ni ra va dhi vi bhī ṣa ṇa da nu na kā ra ṇa pa ra n d p \M G ka ru ṇa yā sī jā ti su grī sā dha naṁ para m p d n d /ṅ d p ta yā sī na ṁ va ha ri ma hi pa ti mā tmā na ṁ n ṡ ṙ ṡ /g ṙ ṡ ca ra ṇa ra tyha bha ra jā ta pa ri vṙ ta a na gha bhu ja ba la Ṡ ṡ n d P tā di ka li ta ma nu pa maṁ śrī ma khi la lō kā Ṡ ṡ n d p m ccha tra cā ma ra jā na kī ra ma naṁ da na ṁ ra ghu g m/d p m g m/pm g m g r vi la si ta ṁ hṙ di ṇaṁ sa dā hṙdi naṁ da naṁ hṙdi rs B.31 kīrtana sāvēri rāga tripuṭa tāḷa Ghanam Sīnayyā pallavi ṡ N d D p sē vi ṁ ci D p / d p m p d p da nyu la ṡ n ṡ n n d p m p d p ma yyē n D p dp m G r gmg\r mo kqa sā ri R : : s r m p d : śrī kṙ ṣṇa ṡ n d p m g R d d p m ka nu pi ṁ ṁ pa g \R ṇ \Ḍ s r G \R S vē ē e ē ē B 1471 S

237 Compositions of various composers Appendix B anupallavi s r / p dē M P va dē p m / d p / D p P va ma ṁ ṁ D p nnā ru ra ṁ P p d / N d P d p m / p m / d p d p ṁ gu ḍai na P : : p d Ṡ nṡ R ṡ : dē va kī n ṡ n N d D p / D na ṁ ṁ da na p Ṡ s N d D nī ci ṁ nni S d p m g r s r m p pā da mu lē /d d p d ē ē caraṇam R s r pu ṭṭa gā pa ra ma bha sa ma ra sa s g \R r r s s r G nē ma tu rā ktu ḍai hā ya mu r S R s s r G pu ri gau na a krū kō ri na R S r s ṇ \ Ḍ nu la nu ḍu gu ru ni to ḍa la vi ja yu pā r mū pu te ra ci na pai ki sā ci na rśva mu gajē si na d r s /r s r M p G r / g r r śrī pā da mu śrī pā da mu śrī pā da mu m P P p m / d p lē e lē e lē e D p P P dī ī dī ī dī ī M m P a ṭṭe na ṁ ka ru ṇa mī vi ma lu ḍai P m / d p / D p d p d N ṁ du niṁḍa ra na ḍu gu na bhī ṣma D p \ M p d N bā lu ḍhai me ṭṭiyā pai na lu ka D p d pm G rg r mg ca ka ṭu ni ku bja va ra da mu gu g r s s r p M p d na ṇa ga daṁ nni na kra mu lu dī rci na ppi ṁ ci du mi gi na mp/ d dpm G r/ g r r śrī pā da mu śrī pā da mu śrī pā da mu m p lē ē e e lē ē e e lē ē e e P P p m / d p B 1472

238 Compositions of various composers Appendix B D p P P dī dī dī D /ṙ ṡ di ṭṭa ta na pa ri gha ma a ma ra ka P ṡ n \ n \D d pm g r r m g mu na pā lu lla raṁga rṇuḍu nā gā g \R s / r s / R / p M ve ṁ nna lu mu na nu mu ṁ ḍi stra mu gu ni vē g \R / p M P mō ci na ka ṁ su ni ya ra tha d u ṭṭu le kki na pai ni dā ṭi na ma ṇa katro kki na p \ m m /P d p d N N d d N d d p d śrī pā da mu śrī pā da mu śrī pā da mu p/ dp/ d\mmp/ dp d lē e lē e lē e s d Ṡ dī ī dī ī dī ī S S S d ṡ d ṡ r ka ṭṭu ko ṁ ga ri ma rā śa ma da maṁ ġ R r ṙ ṡ r G ṁ nna kā ḷi ṁ ja mā ya nnā ru ra ṁ ga \ ṙ Ṡ n ṡ ṙ Ġ ṙ gu ni ma da ma mu na da rmā nā mi yai R S n s ṙ ṡ s n d ṇa ga pa ḍa ga rjunulu pū ja ye lla lō d p p d Ṡ ṡ ṡ n sn Nd d ṡnd d p d śrī pā da mu śrī pā da mu śrī pā da mu p / d p / d \m /P d p d Ṡ n d p m g r s r dī i a a dī i a a dī i a a / p M p d a a a a a a B.32 kīrtana kāmbhōji rāga jhaṁpa tāḷa Tāḷapākam Cinnayyā pallavi s s s / m r G nā mo Rā liṁ / m r / g r pa g *M vē G /d d d N p p d \ m g a yya vē ṁ ka ṭa g r / g r s ra ma ṇā s s r g m p p m g / m r nā mī ta ka ru B 1473 / g s ṇa r g / m r vē

239 Compositions of various composers Appendix B / g r / p m G r g r s dā ā ā ā ṇ \p ḍ s. ā ā ā ā anupallavi m g p d ṡ n p d prē ma tō ō ō nē ṡ ṡ ṡ ṭi ki ni s d ṡ r s / r s s \ n n D śa ra ṇā ga ta d p d p p tā ṇa d Ṡ n n d bi ru du pō nā p p p n d p p p \m ḍa ta gu p d S S m m p d p. d nā ō svā p \m g r \s mī r g m /P m p p p / m r G a a nā mo Rā liṁ caraṇam p d s \n n n d d ka ri ma ka ri cē mu ṁ nnu ra kka sa gō pa ku la mē / n d / n n d ji kki bā dha ra ku pa d p d / n d / n p p gā si ba ḍi mo ra cē ba yā rtu rā ku sē ya ka /d p p \m m li ḍa ga lai na nā ḍu m g / s m m /n D \m gā ci ra kṣi ṁ mu nu la ka bha ya mu koṁ ḍa vē le / p m m m p ca le li yya tta lē d p D D p d Ṡ dā a dā a dā a ṡ \ n d d N a a a a a a a a a B 1474

240 Compositions of various composers Appendix B \p p d ṡ n p d S \ n d na ra mṙ gā kṙ ti pa ṁ nnu gā lā ā pa tpra sa ṁ / n d / n n d bū ni kṣā gṙ nu ḍa ni d m p d / n n d d \p p pra hlā du ko ra hā gni cē ba ḍa ja nu lu pa li ki ni / d p p \m m ku dā ku ṁ ḍa pa lu ku m g / p M p / n D \m na va nā thu cī pā ṁ ḍa vu la ve ḍa la ka ṭa da bba ra p m g m p ra lē vi ṁ pa lā ye d p D D d Ṡ dā vā nā ṡ \ n d d N a a a a a a a \p p d ṡ n p d S n n d a pa ra ga drau -a di a mo ṁ nna nī śa ra a nā puṁ ṇya mo n d n n na d mā ṇu jū lē ka d Ṡ \ n D bha ṁ ga ṁ ṁ bu gā ci na vi bhī ṣa ṇu ni tyō tsa vā d m p d p / n p p \m m ka nē la ṁ ka na ṁ da m m g / p m p p n d \m pa lu va lu va lo sa ke nna rā ju ga ma hi ma cē ma ra ci M m p ga lē sē ya nā d p D D p d S dā vā vō n n d d N \p m g p d /ṡ n \p d ṡ ma ra ci ti vō ā pi ṁ nnu da ni bhā ī pa ṭla a la ṡ ṡ ṡ nā ṭi gyō pa mē lu s d ṡ /ṙ s / r ṡ s \n n d śau rya pra bhā hī nu ḍa ni na ṁ nnu maṁ ga vē ṁ ṁ ka ṭa d / n p / d p p va ṁ ṁ bu da la ci ra ma ṇa B 1475

241 Compositions of various composers Appendix B d ṡ7ṡ n d ma ru ya ṁ nna ca ṁ krē ga ṁ ḍa cū ye va ru na ṁ nnā p p p n n d p p da mē ci nā da ri ṁ cē m m p d Ṡ mī vā ru S m p d p d vō svā vō svā vō svā p \m g r \s mī mī mī r g m P m s a a nā a a nā a a nā B.33 kīrtana kāmbhōji rāga ādi tāḷa Girirāja Kavi pallavi d Ṡ p d Ṡ n d / n n mā yā nī D cot p / d p / d m vaṁ ca na m / p m p d na ḍu va du / n p : d Ṡ : mā yā /n n d p /d d p mā ṭā ḍa ka pō p/ d m g / m r / g s r G / m g / m r vē vē G g r g M vē vē G r R \g R s S a a a a /r S ṇ a ṇ p ḍ. a S a S anupallavi m G p d Ṡ / g r g bā ya ni sa tsa ṁ / m g / m r r ṡ ga ti cē ṡ d /n n d p d pra pa ṁ ṁ ca d d /r s n d / n n d \p d prā ṁ ti vī ṭi pa ri Ṡ \ n d śu ddhu ḍa p /d m g p d nai ti ni B 1476

242 Compositions of various composers Appendix B / n p caraṇam d ṡ \ n d7d /n p d /n n a nu di na mu nu nī bha va sā ga ra mu na te ra li*na nu jñā D p p d p ta na yu la dā ṭi ti naṁ bu na d ṡ n n d mā tyu la yā śā nē na nu d m M p D / n d p p m m g/ p m nā lgu ri ni ra si ṁ pā śa mu la nu drō te lu su kō su sthi ru p p d / n p ci ti ka da si ti ka da ḍai ti ka da d ṡ n n d vē vē vē d p d ṡ \ n d/n n d n d/n n ja na na ma ra ṇa rō kava go ni du ṣkṙ ta parama gu ru ka ṭā G p /d p \m gā du la vā ma ru kṣaṁ bu na m /p m p d ne la nu pa mu lu sā kṣā n d p p d p p d m g g r/ rs a nubha vi ṁ ṁ ci tī ka lpa na ya ni te li dbra ṁ ṁ mmamu nēnai r g m g m r ri ti ka da si ti ka da ti ni ka da / g r / p m G vē ē vē ē vē ē /m g /m r R /g R s S a a a a a a a a a a a /r S ṇ a a a ṇ p ḍ. a a a S S a a a s d ṡ \ N d D n d / n n ni nu cai ba ṭṭi na a vi ra ḷa magu nī du ri ta mu la kuno ṭi D p p d p du kkha mu vivi dha vi ga ṭṭa ku d ṡ n n d p la ṁ nni yu lā sa mu mu nu va le m P m p n d p m g / p m nē ḍu ta na ku to la la bhra ccā ya lu du ṣkṙ tya mu sē p p d / n p ge nu ga da va le ka da ya ka va la d ṡ n n d vē vē vē d m g p d ṡ ṡ ġ ṙ ġ mu nu jē si na pu śi va pū jā pha la do ra la śi khā ma ṇi /m g m ṙ ṙ ṡ s ṇya ṁ ṁ bu na mi pu ḍē pha gi ri rā ṡ d /n n d p d jī va li ṁ ce nu jē ṁ dru ḍu d d /ṙ ṡ ṡ ṡ d /n d p d nmu ktu ḍa nē nai si ddhu la lō nē pra viṁ ṭē śi kṣi ṁ ṡ \ n d p ti ni ga da si ddhu ṭa cu nu ga da p /d m g p d vē nai ti ni vē B 1477

243 Compositions of various composers Appendix B /n p B.34 kīrtana punnāgavarāḷi rāga ādi tāḷa Svayaṁprakāśa Yatīndra pallavi g r G g r / g g r / p m tyā gā dhi pa da m / p m \ yā g r s ni s r G r s dhē va s n s R S /g g r g tā va g / p m p d m P m g kī na ṁ ṁ g R ṇ S ṁ ṁ anupallavi m \ g m p P p m p D p bhō ga da gaṁ gā dha m g / m g g r \ ṇ rā ga ma s r / g m sa ṁ nnu ta m m \ g m p p m p D p \m nā ga vi bhū ṣa ṇa g g r g g / p m p / d p ma ṁ ga ḷa g m p d p m P m g ka ra ṇa r \ ṇ s r G tyā gā caraṇam 4. g g r r / g g r r s rr ṇ s s s s maṁ ju ḷa mu ni ga ṇa raṁ ja ma kaḷa ji ta pa ṁ ka ja sa ṁ bhava śaṁ ka ra varaguṇa su ṁ da ra nṙ pa mucu kuṁda na ta a mara da kṣasa va ma da na da ṣa ṇa sura ga ṇa B 1478 r g r s / r s r ṇ kha ṁ ja na ki ra ṇa ni pa ṁ ka gi ri da ḷa na bṙ ṁ da nu ta ta nu ja ra kṣa vi bu dha ri pu S s ri g g m m raṁ ja na ma da na vi ṭaṁ ka bhu ja ga kṙ ta bṙṁ da vi ji ta ma ka śi kṣa ṇa śu bha da vi

244 Compositions of various composers Appendix B 4. 4, \ G m p p / d m p D n d p m\ g r g paṁ ja na ni ṭa la dha naṁ ja ya pada na ta kaṁ ka ṇa mṙ gadha ra kiṁ ṁ ki ṇi pada yu ga raṁ da va ca na śu bha ku ṁ da ha si ta dvipa ca kṣaṇa bha ja na kṙ ta kṣaṇa su ra mada r \ n s r G tyā gā m p d / n p / d m p ka ṁ ja ja śru ti ga ṇa á ṁ ka ra vī thi vi va ṁ di ta mu ni su ta la kṣa ṇa sva ya ṁ pra m g / p m / d p p m g pa ṁ ja ra ca ra ṇa ṭa ṁ kā gha ha ra ṇa na ṁ di ta ma hi mā kā śā dhi pa tē B.35 kīrtana kalyāṇi rāga aṭa tāḷa Akkuḷ Svāmi pallavi s / g r G tā va G g G ka ka ra G r ka /g g R ma r g p m /P lē ma p m p d / n d p m ma hya ma g m /P bha \g g ya \r : : R /g r s S : dā na ṁ s ṇ S R ṁ ṁ ku ru r g g dē m p d p g G R va s r G \S a a S a S anupallavi d / s n /Ṡ dē va S d / n d p kī ta na m p ya \m p śrī B 1479

245 Compositions of various composers Appendix B p n \D n ṡ kṙ ṣṇā n d n /Ṡ mu rā S rē S s d d n ṡ dī na S n /ṡ N d va tsa la / n D p da p m p yā P p ṡ siṁ ṅ /ṡ d dhō p p m g m P ba ṁ dhō m g m p o /d d p m o g r s o o tā r caraṇam g g g m sma ra kē sa ma rā su ra pa pa ri ja ja na nī \g m p m g m śi sa ma ṁ ga ṇa ti vi na ka ba sta nya /P ya vima tra ḷa pā P śrī la sta na na p P / ṡ n s d rā dhā sa li la gō gō yā ga ve ḷā p m g /m p gha na sa ṁ kṣā pā ta ga la yā mi ta g m g ta ḷi la bha ra g r ra ta ka kā g g /d p m sta na ka la śa sa vya sā pa ri trā su ra mu kha sta na pa ri g m p m \G g pa ri ma rda ci śa tā ṁ ga ṇō dhṙ ta ma dvai dhī ka spṙ śa da ṁ gu g r na vi tu ra hā ra ṇa ni ki s ṇ S lō kā ṁ śai ni pu sa la R G la ga la ṇa ya m p d p g G na na na na na R ā ā ā ā ā S ā ā ā ā ā B 1480

246 Compositions of various composers Appendix B s g g / p m p su ru ci ra ka ma nī pa ra ma va ra bṙ a na gha m g m p p m p mu ra ya caṁ vi sma ya ṁ dā a kṣa ya m /P ḷī da ka va pā P vi na rāṁ na p P ṡ va ra dā gu ḷī vi ha ga ta n ni saṁ ra śā ṡ d yī p m g m P hi tā ku bjā ṁ ga ṁ jñā ṇa sa ma ga ma G tyaṁ saṁ saṁ ya śnā R ta mya ṁ gō tu G d P suṁ da rāṁ kka raṇa nipu pa rivi dhṙta pāṁ ga nā mā da ra m p m \ G r gu ni pa lla ṇā naṁ da du rja ya ja ja na ta nu maṁ tsa mya /g R s vō śa rā ḍa na kpa ri n s s lla sa kti yu sa ṁ ka ra vi dhṙ /R /G ta ta ta ṇa ta m p d p g G na na na na na R ā ā ā ā ā S ā ā ā ā ā s d d / s N pa ra ma sa ma dhi ta ra ṇi pa ra mā di na ka Ṡ N ṡ n d ghā ta ka ka gō su tā rtha mi bha rā tma ja /n D p ga ṁ pā ṁ ta rā vai p m p sa ga ṭa ja ri p D / s n n cō nāṁ di ta ta gō ma da la ṁ pa ra mā S n \D mu rgē ha pa ḍiṁ bya śuṁ tma ta / s N ṣṭi śi bha ḍa tvō /Ṡ kō kya da a pa g g g m p su ra ma hi sthā bhi na va dhyaṁ nna ka ba pā ra ma di dē śa sa ma m p / d d d dha ra gha na ni na va nī ta ḷa gra ha ṇa ga ma yi tu ṁ yā ka li ta d d śi ta ha ra sa ṁ sa ṁ ci d p ku li ṇa ca pra va pra va nmu B 1481

247 Compositions of various composers Appendix B d / ṡ n /Ṡ ṡ n śa ṇa ṇa ṇa dra n d ṡ n ].s r R ṡ na na na na ṇa Ṡ ā ā ā ā ā S s d d ṡ ṡ sa ra sa vi ma la va ra ra ra ci ra kā vi na ta n ṡ n ṡ Ṙ ja la kē gā ṁ gē tha sā lā rji ta dī na ṙ ṡ ḷi ya ra pṙ thu ja S vi pra dhya ka na S / g R ṡ S lō la ti knā la ka la nā taṁ ḍu saṁ ra Ṡ N ṡ n d gō ṣā rji ta la dā kṣa ṇa /n D p pī ḍgu cā ya pa P va ṇyā ru ku ri m \G g p p strā pa ha rra rō pi ta na va ma ṇī cē la mu ni vi dhṙ ta bhu va m p /d d ṇa ka lā di k r dala va ma ya vē na vi khyāta d d ni pu vi dhṙ tō śva va ra d p ṇa ta ta ca tra la rya ka bi ru d n ṡ ṡ n ṡ d ra kra ta ra da p m g m p ṇa ṇa na ṇa na g m a a a a a d d p m a a a a a a a a a a g r s r G a tā va a tā va a tā va a tā va a tā va B.36 taraṅgam bhairavi rāga rūpaka tāḷa Nārāyaṇatīrtha Yatīndra pallavi B 1482

248 Compositions of various composers Appendix B d n ṡ ṙ Ṡ ja ya ja ya gō ṡ n n Ṡ s n d p ku la bā lā p d n ṡ \ n d p ja ya sa ka lā m g g m / p m \ g r s ga ma mū lā anupallavi s \ṇ g r g / p m da ya yā mā ṁ P d p D n d n ṡ ṙ ṡ gō pā la ġ / m ġ ṙ Ṡ ṡ \ n d p dī naṁ pā m g R G / p M P d p la ya pā la caraṇam p p m n d /n N dē va ma yā n d n ṡ \ n d p ca ri ta mi da ṁ p d p d P dī na dhi yā m p m p d d P pa rā dhaṁ p d n ṡ ṡ śrī S va su dhā \n n n /r s n d p dhi pa kṙ pa yā Ṡ \n d p m kē va la mi ha \ g r g / p m p d p dhū nī hi svaram N ṡ ṙ ġ ṙ ṡṙ n ṡ p d m p m / n d p m / p m g r s n s r g s r ṇ s ṇ ḍ ṇ s r g m p d p m p d n Ṡ p d n ṡ Ṙ d n ṡ ṙ / Ġ n ṡ ṙ / G ṙ ġ / m ġ ṙ ṡ ṙ /Ġ R ṡ \N S p m \G R s g r g m p d B 1483

249 Compositions of various composers Appendix B d n ṡ ṙ Ṡ ja ya ja ya gō ṡ n n Ṡ s n d p ku la bā lā p d n ṡ \ n d p ja ya sa ka lā aṭhāṇā rāgam n /p n Ṡ n \ D ī kṣē tā p n \P N s ṙ ṡ n d d va ka dē hē p m P m p m p \m G ī śa ja ga r m p N p n p d d ddi ni rī hē p s g g r s vī kṣā śi s ṙ ṡ ṙ n ṡ n \D n n Ṡ kṣi ta mō hē s ṡ ṙ ṡ ṡ n \d d vē dā ṁ tā p n \P n /ṙ ṡ n d d p m tu la gē hē svaram P \d d p m d p m p m \ G r r s ṇ s r m p n \P S n ṡ ṙ ṡ n ṡ n \D n ṡ n ṡ ṙ ṡ ṅ Ṡ ṡ ṙ G ṙ ṡ n ṡ Ṙ ṡ n ṡ ṙ ṡ n ṡ n d n d n ṡ ṙ (bhairavi) Ġ R ṡ \N D p m \G R s g r g m p d d n ṡ ṙ Ṡ ja ya ja ya gō ṡ n n Ṡ s n d p ku la bā lā p d n ṡ \ n d p ja ya sa ka lā B 1484

250 Compositions of various composers Appendix B kāṁbhōji rāgam d ṡ d ṡ \n n d ja ga da ṁ ḍa D d d n n d kō ṭi ta nō p d p d Ṡ ja ga du ta rāṁ ṡ n d p d p d m p m ta ra su ta nō m m g p d ṡ ṙ a ga ṇi ta saṁ a r ṁ g ṙ r ṡ ṙ ġ jā ta ma tō r ġ ṙ ṡ d d R ṡ a pa ri mi tā ṡ n d p d ṙ ṡ s n d p śri ta dhē nō svaram p d Ṡ d ṡ ṙ ṡ r d p d m d P p d p m g m g r s r g S r ḍ s ṇ ḍ p. ḍ s r g m p d m g p d Ṡ : : p d ṡ ṙ ġ ṁ ġ ṙ ṡ ṙ ġ ṙ /ġ ṙ s n d p m g p d s ṙ (bhairavi) /Ġ R ṡ / N D p m \G R s g r g m p d d n ṡ ṙ Ṡ ja ya ja ya gō ṡ n n ku la 4. kalyāṇi rāgam g g m p m /P vi ta ra m yī /d d p /n n d n ṡ ṙ śva ra ka ru ṇā ṁ s /ṙ n n / ṡ d d p m p vi gha ṭa ya mō m \G /d d p m g / p m r hā va ra ṇa ṁ ṁ B 1485

251 Compositions of various composers Appendix B r s r r g g r s sa ta ta ṁ mē ṇ s r s ṇ ḍ ṇ s bha va śa ra ṇa ṁ s ṙ ṇ ṇ s ḍ / ṣ ṇ ḍ ṇ sā dha ya sa ṁ ṁ ḍ p. p d d p m \g /m r sṙ ti ta ra ṇa ṁ svaram G M p g /d m g r s R /g r s ṇ s r s ṇ s n \D ṇ s r / G / p m p /G n ṡ ṙ /g ṙ ṡ n Ṡ d n ṡ ṙ ġ ṁ ġ ṙ ṅ ṙ g r n / g ṙ n / r n d m d n ṡ ṙ (bhairavi) /Ġ R ṡ \N D p m \G R s g r g m p d d n ṡ ṙ Ṡ ja ya ja ya gō 5. suraṭṭi rāgam r m p ṙ Ṡ i ti vi dhi nā n d n /ṡ n d P pa7ri gī taṁ p r m p n d n /ṡ n d śru ti va ca sā p d p m m g r / m r s ha ri ca ri ta ṁ s s ṡ n ṡ ṙ / g r Ṡ ya ti nā rā p n d n /ṡ n d ya ṇa ka thi taṁ s n ṡ /ṙ ṡ n n /ṡ n d n ṡ ya du ku la bhū n d p r m r m p m p ṣa ṇa mu di ta ṁ svaram B 1486

252 Compositions of various composers Appendix B S s n d n ṡ n n d p m p m n d n p d p m g\ R /m m r s ṇ s r /m r m p m /n d n p d p m p,n n Ṡ ṡ ṙ / m n ṡ ṙ p n s r n /r \S n d p \M p n s r (bhairavi) /Ġ R ṡ \N D p m \G R s g r g m p d d n ṡ ṙ ja ya ja ya B.37 cauka varṇam nīlāṁbari rāga aṭa tāḷa Pūrvikās pallavi N S / r S ṇ s n ī i i va ra n / S S s r / ṇ S /g G m ha me ṭu la g m / p m / p m g m sai ai ai ai r g g r p lu m P m g / M M g m P m g nē ē e e ē n M p d / n d / r d P \m g vō la la g g / p g m P m / p m g m na r r G nē r g m /p e m g r g m m G / S ṇ Ṇ s ṇ e e e e vi ra n S S s r \ṇ S /g G m ha me ṭu la g m /p m / p m g m sai ai ai ai ai B 1487 r g g r p ai ai tu

253 Compositions of various composers Appendix B m /p m m g r g m p ṡ p n d n Ṡ nē e e e ye va ri n n Ṡ n P m m g tō g m p d n d n n P m vi ṁ nna g m / p m / p m g m vi i i r g g r p i i ṁ tu p M G g \S s ṇ ṇ s ṇ nē mū iī vi ra S vi S S S S S S S S anupallavi G / p vē M P p m p / n la d np M pmp p N p mpm g m/ pm ga mē ceṁ ṁṁ ṁ da g \ r g m m p p m g gha nu m m P vi P m /p m g r : : G / p M P a a : : vē vē m m P ni P P Ṡ S ṡ n n d n Ṡ vē ēṁ ka ṭa n n Ṡ n p p m p d N d n Ṡ n n Ṡ n rā ya ni tō p p \M g m p / n de p p m g lu r g r g m pa m g g s vē muktāyi svaram sāhityam B 1488

254 Compositions of various composers Appendix B s / r S s \ṇ N ni nu naṁ mmi na nā S / r s \ N s \ṇ s /g pai ni ka kō pa mu ta gu G s \ṇ nā a nu s /g G vu ga nā / M g m p / n \P m g mā ṭa lu vi na vē ce li m P m g m m p p ṡ vi rā ḷi da yi tu ni ba lu s N p m gā ra va g m p /ṡ mu lu bi gi S /ṙ ṡ ṅ s s n p m kau gi ṭa na la mu cu nu u g m p n p ṡ s n p ṡ ta ma ka pu ma ru va ṭi na dha s / r r ṡ ra mu na nu n ṡ n / r ka ḍu pa lu s s n p p / n p p \m g ku du ku ru nu nu pa ga na ti g m p n p ṡ n p p / n pa li ki te ni ja mu gi ni di d / n p / d sa ma ya mu p p m m na nu ka nu g g go na caraṇam P p m g m p p d / n d / n paṁ ḍu P m m G g m p d n d n d P m ve ṁ nne la a a a g m /p m / p m g r gā ā G m m \m M a a ya g /m /P P ṡ \n \d n S maṁ ci paṁ ṁ ḍu u N n /Ṡ n p m G g m ve e ṁ ṁ nna la B 1489

255 Compositions of various composers Appendix B g m / p m / gā p m g m a G m p \m M a ya svara sāhityam P \ M M g g / M bhā mā ma ṇi vē /P P m / d \P m g mā ru nu nē mi gu g / M g la jā li \S s g jeṁ di ti g m vi nu G m P m g m /P m / p m g sā mi nē ḍu da ya tō so ga su ga G M nē mu p \M m m G r g m m G g \ S s n s g gm ddu gu mma vaddanumudaṁbu mīraga vagalacā m m g m m P p la ra tu la nē na m /d p p m g s ṇ da la pa ma yi tē to ṭa s /g g m la dha re nu G m g m p \M g m m /p P m g / p \M g hā yi ga ka la sē ne Ra ta na mē ma ni nu diṁ tu /M g s ṇ P /gg d g g m/ p mgm r g r /m M g G nī yeda nukāminī sadayuni dalacitē pulaka lu mē lu niṁ G \P ḍā P \ Ṇ nu s g g m ppa ti lle nu 4. P d D p p m G m P m g m P m g ē la nē va la ci bē la nai ti ga fe lē ni pō B 1490

256 Compositions of various composers Appendix B g m r /m m g \S / g G m g m P p /d \P ni da na ta ku nā sa rō ja mu khi nī pa da mā p m g m va ga ta va p /n p ṡ ci te a a s /r s n /S ni mi ṣa mu dā s s n \P na du paṁ 5. P P m g m p / N D / N p m p /D /P ē vē ḷa tō ḍa ri nī dā na na nu cu nā vē p m g m P m G m r g \ R / m G / m g s ḍu ko na kō ṭi sē ya ka nu bō ḍi rō vi na vē \N /s S / g g m yē ṭi tā ma saa mu m g \S s na nu vē ḍi P p nā ḍi /Ṡ ṡ /ṙ ṡ n ṡ n \P m M g nā sa ri yu va tu la lō nā cau g m p / n D p m g m p Ṡ s n p m g m p ka ki ḍa gā da la ce nu da yā pa ru ḍu i pu ḍu yē p p m g la yi ṭa g /M g ku rā ḍu s /G g i d mo s \ṇ Ṇ ra ma ṇī s g g m ma ṇi vi nu B 1491

257 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.38 cauka varṇam kannaḍa rāga ādi tāḷa Prācīnās pallavi s s G m p m a lu ga P p M nē G /m r g m la /d p d D D d rā nā / n d / n p d n S tō yū N ṡ n d P ra kē M p M d p m : : g m / p g R G m d sā mi : : a lu ga P P nē r g m /d p la m g m / p rā g.m R s r S ā S S S anupallavi d / n d p m /p g m g ce li mi ni g g m P nī p m m P tō p m g m mā D D D D ṭlā ḍu pa di / n d / n p p m vē la naṁ m d / ṡ n n Ṡ n d p m p m : : d /n d p : ce li mi d ṡ n n Ṡ dhu ku S s d d n Ṡ ṡ n s R ca la mu Ṡ n s R pa ṡ n ṡ n ḍu d n \D d / s n S \ r n d p d d n sā dhi ṁ ce yu va ṡ n /ṡ d d p m ra ṁ ṁ ga /d P m g m / p g r sā mi muktāyi svaram B 1492

258 Compositions of various composers Appendix B r g m P m g m d d n / ṡ d p m / p \R g m d d n ṡ ṙ ṡ ṅ n D : : m D d n ṡ d n S s n / Ṙ ṡ n Ṡ n / R ṡ n ṡ d n ṡ r \D / n p m / p g r s caraṇam s s r G m p n D ta ḷi ru P p M mō vi m g /m r g m pai ni /d P g r p : p p G m p m nī : M S mā ni m g /m r g m hai ni svaram P P P M / p G m R S n s ṇ r \S r N s n Ḍ ṇṇ \S ḍ ṇ s r g /M r G m r G M p \G / m R s r s D D p m m D d / s n d p m P m d p m p G m d d n ṡ Ṙ Ṡ n ṡ n \D / ṡ D p m p P p \G m r G M p \G / M \R s r s D D ṡ m m D d n ṡ \ d n /Ṡ S ṡ s /ṙ \B n ṡ d n G p m B 1493

259 Compositions of various composers Appendix B /p M M g m / d D d n d n ṡ N s ṙ ṡ N quad n Ṡ / ṙ n / ṡ d n Ġ /ṁ ṙ ṡ n / Ṅ ṡ ṡ n ṡ \ D p m ṡ n D p m p \G m / d n\ M /p \G / m \R s r s taḷi ru B.39 cauka varṇam manōhari rāga ādi tāḷa Rāmasvāmi Dīkṣita pallavi ṇ s g M p P / d P m m g / m g śrī ka ma lā ṁ bā S S s sa ṇ ḍ p. / s ṇ s dā nī s g m p p p \ n d p m / p m g m pa da ka ma la mu lē g n n s g na ṁ mmi ti g m /p m G vi nu mī \ S ī anupallavi n n ṡ n Ṡ n ṡ n d ka ma lā sa nā d p p m g m di sa ṁ p n ṡ ġ nnu ta yai g ġ ṁ ġ Ṡ n n d p \m ka ma lā pu ra mu na g m p s n d p m vi la si lu g / p m g s ṇ s ja na nī svaram g m d P m g m p p M g s ṇ ḍ p. p ṃ g. ṃ p. Ṇ ṡ g s g m P :: d P m g m p Nṡ Ġ Ṡ n n d P M g \S \N s g m p m g m p p ka nu B 1494

260 Compositions of various composers Appendix B caraṇam m g. p M P / d p / d p ma di lō nē m g g m g p nī s ṇ s g m nā ma mu : : : : /d p m g / M P ma di lō ṇ S G m nā ma mu svaram S G / p M m P \m m G m p m g ma di p d p g m g s g \S ṇ ḍ p. Ṇ s Ṇ s g s G m G m / d p / d p m g M / p m g p D m g s ṇ ḍ ḍ p. Ṇ ṣ m m g \P / d m m g s : : ṇ S s g s g m m p m d p n /S p p ṡ n d P m m g / p M P / d p / d p ma di lō nē m g g m g s nī s ṇ S G m nā ma mu d p m / p m g m p m g s ṇ ma ru va ka taz laṁ cē S g g m dē m p g m p p nē ma mu m p n \ d p / d p / d m a ti te li yu ḍa kai p g M p g m su P n s jñā na mu ṡ n d p / d P m m G a nu bha vi ṁ cu ṭē \s s g / p m dhyā na G \P mu s n n / Ṡ S N n yi ti nī pa da \d p P m pra bhō p n n ṡ ṡ va mu B 1495

261 Compositions of various composers Appendix B / m g / m g ṡ ṡ / n d p d P m yī śva rī nī g m p / n d p p m ni ja m g /p m g s ṇ s bhā va mu g m d P m After singing this muktāyu svaram, the pallavi should be sung and the rendition is to be completed. B.40 cauka varṇam edukula kāṁbhōji rāga ādi tāḷa Pañcāpakēśa Bhāgavatar pallavi S r / p m /P d p p m cā la naṁ mmi na /P d m cā na nē p p m g r /g \s lu ṭa kī : : : : n s \p d s d s s r s r jā la mē mi nā r / p m sā m G r mi r g R s S i ī anupallavi P /n d \p p / m g r /g \s mē li mi mi gu la S r / p m kī rti ga p p / d p \m la vu ḍa yā r P d d d.s ṡ ṡ ṡ pā ḷa ya mu na ve la yu \ N d d d śrī ka cci yu / n d / n p / d p / d m va ra ṁ ga bhū P d d ṡ \ n ṡ ṙ pā la nī su gu ṇa r / m ġ ṙ śī la mu R r ṡ la nni yu P d d ṡ \ n d d p \m bā lā ma ṇi yu vi ni / P d m / p mē lu ga \m g r / m g lu gu na ni muktāyi svaram sāhityam M \S r / p p \m d sā ra sā kṣi ma di B 1496 \P m lō ma m g \ r g na ka nī

262 Compositions of various composers Appendix B \s r / p m G m g/ m ce li mi kō ri va la p \ M p pu mī ri / n d p d ni ra ta mu p d ṡ S ṙ ṙ /ṁ pa ga lu rē yi vi ra g g ṙ ṡ ha ma ne ṭi n d p m ja la dhi lō p /d Ṡ n d p d pa ḍi tē le ḍu ta ri m / d \P dha ri nī g bs m g r va nu cu nu \ caraṇam M m g r r / g s r nī vē sa rva / p M p p taṁ tra sva /d d p m g s r ta ṁ tru ḍau : : : : svaram M m g r /m g ē ma ni te lu pu \S \p du nnī p ḍ s r ma na su / M P d m p d P d m /d p m nī pā la ve la si na ṭṭi ma gu va nu P m G r / m g nī vu brō vu ma ni r \R g \S s r de lpa bō du ga da m p /d d p m p /dd p m p mg g r dora ta na munu neratanamunu galigina r s r / m g r s r sa ra su ḍa nu cu ta na m p d ma di ni m / d p m p da la ci ni nu d d ṡ s ṙ s ṙ /ṁṁ ġ ṙ / g ṙ / g s.r śaraṇamani maru lu konina taru ṇi nika d /ṙ ṡ ka ru ṇa s n d p d sa lu pu ṭa ku p / n d p m g sa ma ya mi di vi s r nu mu 4. Ṡ /ṙ ṡ n d p m g r /m g sā ra sa mu khi va le ce lu li la \S \S lō lē d s r / m g m p d da nu cu pa lu ku du ru / ṡ n d P d m / d p / M g s r m p ma na su lō na ma ma ta mī ri sa ra gu na /n n d p / n d p d ka la ya ta ru ṇa mi ti m p m /d \P vi nu mi ka nī : : : : m g r \S r / p m g s r /m g m p so ga su kai na di ya di ra mu da mu ga nu d ṡ r / m ġ ṙ r s ka la yu ṭa ka nu ya ti s n n d vi ta ra ṇa d p p m mu lu ga la B 1497

263 Compositions of various composers Appendix B p d ṡ ṙ g mp d s r r m p d ṡ s doravanucu nilanuninu pogaḍuṭayu vi r m p d ṡ d s r ni vi ni vi ni hṙ da ya m p mu na d p m g s r va la ci na sa ti B.41 kīrtana nāṭa rāga ādi tāḷa Tyāgarājasvāmi pallavi p p n N P p ṡ ja ga dā naṁ N Ṡ da kā ṡ S ṡ ra p m g m kā p p n N p P ṡ n N ja ga dā na ṁ N Ṡ da kā ṡ S N ra p m g m kā p p ṡ N p p m g m p n N ja ga dā na ṁ n Ṡ da kā p n ṡ n ra p m g m kā 4. p p n s P n p P ṡ n Ṅ ja ga dā na ṁ n Ṡ da kā ṡ Ṡ n p m g m 5. p p P n p p P n p p p n N n ja ga dā dna ṁ n S da kā p S n ra p m g m kā 6. p p n N p p m n p s n n ja ga dā naṁ ṡ s p n N da kā p n ṡ n ra p m g m kā 7. p p ṡ n p m ṙ s S ṡ n ja ga dā na ṁ N n Ṡ da kā ṡ Ṡ n g m p m ra kā 8. p p n N p ja ga dā p Ṡ n ṡ ṙ na ṁ ṙ s n p m r da r g m p n p m kā ra kā 9. p p p N p ja ga dā p Ṡ n ṡ ṙ na ṁ ṡ n p m R ṡ n da kā p m ṙ s g m p m ra kā B 1498

264 Compositions of various composers Appendix B 10. p p p N p p Ṡ n ṡ Ṙ ṙ ja ga dā na ṁ S g m p ṡ da ṡ Ṡ n p m g m kā ra kā 1 p p p N p p Ṡ n ṡ ṙ ja ga dā na ṁ ṙ ṡ ṡ n n p p m ṁ da m r r s g m p m kā ra ka 1 p p p N p ja ga dā p Ṡ n ṡ ṙ na ṁ Ṡ ṙ ṡ Ṙ ṡ n P n p M p n da G m r s r g m p m kā ra kā 1 p p n N p m r R s ja ga dā s ṇ Ṇ p. na ṁ da p \S g m p m kā ra kā p p s n p m r s s n P ja ya jā na kī s S s prā ṇa nā ya kā p p ṡ n p ṡ n p m r s m r s ja ya jā na kī n p n ṡ s prā ṇa g m p n p m g m nā ya kā p p ṡ n Pns np mr S gm rs jayajā na kī n p Ṡ ṡ prā ṇa g m g m P p m g m nā ya kā 4. p p ṡ n n p p m m r r s s ṇ ja ya jā na kī ṇ ḍ ṇ s s prā ṇa g m p /n g m p m nā ya kā 5. p p s npnp Mp m G mg Srs Ṇṣṇ jayajā ma kī n ṇ p. S s prā ṇa g m p n g m p m nā ya kā p p p N p ja ga dā m P m g m na ṁ P n p m p M da r s g m p m kā ra kā p p n N p P m G m M p ja ga dā naṁ P n p m r da p m m r R s kā ra kā S S s ṇ Ṇ S S S S anupallavi B 1499

265 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n n Ṡ p n S n ga ga nā dhi pa Ṡ S dhī s n ṡ n s n n ṡ ṙ ṡ ṡ ṙ ṡ p n Ṡ ga ga nā dhi pa sa s g m p n ṡ n p n tku la ja rā ja rā ṡ n p m G jē śva rā m g mp n p ṡ n ṡ R ṡ n pmr suguṇā karasura sēvya bha ṡ R n S vya dā ya kā S s n p m g m sa dā sa ka la p p N ja ga dā caraṇams svara sāhityas s s n P m p s s r s s mm r amaratā raka nicayakumudahita s m M p pa ri pū rṇā p p m m p m m na gha su ra su ra R s m r s S n P p mm P pūjadadhipayō dhivāsaharaṇā Ṡ ṡ n n s n n suṁ da ra ta ra va da ṡ n P ṙ ṡ n p na su dhā ma ya va cō p s n p M n p m R p m r S bṙṁdagō viṁdasā naṁdamā p P ṡ S n p va rā ja rā pta śu m r S r g m bha ka rē nē kā (p p N) (ja ga dā) P n P n p m M p M p m g iṁdranīlamaṇi sannibhāpaghana G m G m g s caṁ dra sū rya na ya N s G m p nā pa mē ya vā P n p ṡ n ṙ s M r ṡ n p M gīṁdrajanakasaka lēśaśu bhranā g m p s n p p n gē ṁ dra śa ya na śa ma p m r s s r g m na vai ri sa ṁ nu ta (p p N) (ja ga dā) p m r s ṇ p S S m r s S. karadhṙtaśarajālā suramadā s p m r S n p pa ha ra ṇā va nī p p m r S n p su ra su rā va na B 1500

266 Compositions of various composers Appendix B p N n p s s /R ṙ m ṗ n \P p kavīna bilajamauḷi kṙtaca ri tra s n p m R n p sa ṁ nnu ta śrī tyā m r S ga rā r g m ja nu ta (p p N) (ja ga dā) 4. s p P\M R s P m r s p m sṙṣṭi sti tyaṁ takārakā mita G m p n p G kā mi ta pha la dā m P m R sa mā na gā p m tra śa R n p m R s n p m R r S cīpatinutā bdhimadaharā nurā p S s p r g ga rā ji ta m P ka thā Ṡ n p m sā ra hi ta (p p N) (ja ga dā) 5. P n p mp N p M n p m pn pādavi ji tamauniśāpasava P m m p M pā la va ra maṁ g tra m p n P p gra ha ṇa lō la s s r S s p p pm r s N p m paramaśāṁta cittajanaka jādhipa p Ṡ n p n s r sa rō ja bha va va ra R Ṡ n p m dā ā khi la (p p N) (ja ga dā) 6. p P n p m n p mm p mgm r purāṇa puruṣanṙ varātma jā rcita s R s m g p m pa rā dhī na ka rā n P m g m p n vi rā dha rā va ṇa p Ṡ ṡ ṙ ṡm ṙ ṡ Ṙ ṡ n p mm virāvaṇā nagha parāśaramanō g G m p s n p ha rā vi kṙ ta tyā m R s s r g m ga rā ja sa ṁ nnu ta (p p N) (ja ga dā) 7. S n p R s7m r s / p P m r s sajjana mā na sā bdhi sudhākaraju m m /p \M m / su ma vi mā na n p su ra P / s s r S s sā ri pu ka rā bja /Pm r s / n P / ṡ n P /ṙ s p lā li taca raṇā vaguṇā sura ga ṇa p / ṁ ṙ ṡ n P / ṡ ma da ha ra ṇā sa S p P nā ta nā m g m ja nu ta B 1501

267 Compositions of various composers Appendix B (p p N) (ja ga dā) 8. S S s S r s N ṡ ṡ n ōṁ kāra pañjarakī ra pura p p /ṡ S n p /ṡ ha ra sa rō ja bha va s n p m R n p kē sa vā di rū pm R s n p m r s S p s n p pa vāsavaripu janakāṁtakakalā p m r s S p p dha ra ka lā dha ra p p pta ṇ S r g m ghṙ ṇā ka ra śa r G m p n p Ṡ ṡ n s ṡ Ṡ m raṇāgataja napālanasu manōra ṁ ṙ S r N s ma ṇa ni rvi kā ra p n m P m g m ni ga ma sā ra ta ra (p p N) (ja ga dā) 9. p p n p p n p p m P n P n agaṇita guṇakana kacēlasā la p p m M p / m vi da ḷa nā ru ṇā m / n p M / ṡ n p bha sa mā na ca ra M P m g m P m r s p m r s ṇā pāra mahimā dbudhasu kavijana n p m r s ṡ n p hṙ tsa da na su ra mu m r s p m p s r ni ga ṇa vi hi ta ka lā s P n s r S m r s P m r s śanī ranidhijā ramaṇa pāpagaja n P p ṡ n P nṙ siṁ ha va ra tyā ṙ Ṡ Ṡ n p m ga rā jā dhi nu ta p p N P p ṡ ja ga dā na ṁ n Ṡ da kā B 1502

268 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.42 kīrtana gauḷa rāga ādi tāḷa Tyāgarājasvāmi pallavi r r p m P m p m g m du ụ kū ga la r s R p m g m na nnē R r ṇ s do ra s r m r m p M p /n p n p m ko ṭu ku prō ka M M rā p m g m r r s s ye ṁ tō ō anupallavi r r R R s ṡ ṙ ṁ ka ṭu du rvi ṣa yā ṁ ṡ ṙ ṁ ṙ sa ktu ṡ n p n ṡ ḍai tē ṙ /ṁ ṙ ṡ s /ṙṡṅ n /s n p p /npm ga ḍi ya ga ḍi ya \ r m p n / ṡ n p ku yi ṭu m g m r r s s va ṁ ṭi caraṇams svara sāhityas r r s S r s r M m s r M sakalabhū tamulayaṁtu nī vai n s r /g / M s r yu ṁ ḍa gā ma di G m r r s s lē ka pō yi na : : B 1503

269 Compositions of various composers Appendix B s r r p \M r r s S s r p\m cirutu prā yēmulanāḍēbha ja nā /p p m m r r s s r /p m m r s r /p paradhana mulakora kuno rulamadhi ka ra r s ṇ s r \S s mṙ ta ra sa vi hī na m r /pm n s r m ga ba li ki kaṭupuni p \M m r r s s ku ta rku ḍai na S s ṁpa dirikinaṭṭi mm r r s 4. /n p m p /n r m p N m p N p n ta na mmadi ni bhuvinisau khyampu jī vana 5. /r r *p p r r.m m s s /r r p d r s teliyani naṭa vi ṭa śū drulu vanitalu rm r s n Ṡ ṙ ṁ R r ṡ n / ṙs lli svaralayaṁbule ruṁga kanu śi lā S r m p n Ṡ mē ya nu cu sa dā /p m m r s s / n p sva va śa ma vu ṭa 7ku pa s s n p / ṡ N p tmu lai su bha ktu s n p m r r s s di na mu lu ga ḍi pē m P n s n s r dē śiṁ ci sa ṁ ta si m r / n P m r s la ku sa mā na ma nu 6. S rr s S S r s r /g/ m r p dhṙṣṭikisāraṁ bagu la la nā sada S p ṡn P / ṙ ṡ n P ṡ n p m dēva dē vaneranaṁmitinigā M r n P M nā rbha ka sē nā s n p \M r r s mi ta dha nā du la nu m/ n p m R s s p m r s r /m / P m r s r R 7. P p cakkanimukha kamalaṁbulanu sa dā s S s p m r S s n p P p ṡ rmadāṁdha panulakōri paritā pamu ka nī pa dā bja bha M s r M ṇ s nā ma di lō sma ra n P p m r m p la cē ta gi li no gi p Ṡ n p m r s ja naṁ bu ma ra ci na r G m R s r ṇa lē ka nē du n S sṡ n P li du rvi ṣa ya B 1504

270 Compositions of various composers Appendix B 8. ṙ R ṁ ṙ ṁ ṡ ṙṁ Ṙ ṡ n p n ṡ durāsalanu rō yalēka satata ma S r s n s R r s ṇ s r M m mānava tanudurlabha manukaneṁci ṙ Ṡ n p m r m pa rā dhi yai ca pa s r M r m s r pa ra mā na ṁ da ma p N p m m r s la ci ttu ḍai na S r s S ṁ da lē ka 9. /p p \M r s r m p \R m \ R p m madamatsara kā ma lō bha mōhula p /np p /np m/pm r /pm r m p n modaṭi ku la ju ḍakucu bhu vi ni śū drula /ṡ Ṡ s r r m \Ṙṁ ṡ ṙ/ṁ Ṙ ṡ narādha mulanu rō ya sā ra hīna m/p pm gm r s n srm r m P sa tu la kai ko ṁ rmp gmrs s ṇ\p. ṇ srm n la kai ko ṁ r r r r srm s rm ta tu la kaiti rigi r /ṁṙṡ ṡ /ṙṡn n /snp p/npm tyā ga rā jā r /P m r /m s r ku dā su ḍai mō p n ṡ \ R m p n pa nu lu sa lpu cu nu n p n ṡ / ṙ Ṡ sṡ mai na nu sā di r m P \ R M nnā ḷḷā \P P nnā ḷḷu r s n s n p ti na r m p n ṡ n p ptā yi ṭu /m R s S S sa bō ti gā ga p m r s S S nu ṁ ṭi ki gā ka n p P m R S ṁ pa tā ru mā ru R S / p m /p m sti kai su tu p m m/ p m m dha na P P yyā m g m r r s s va ṁ ṇṭi i B 1505

271 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.43 kīrtana śrī rāga ādi tāḷa Tyāgarājasvāmi pallavi s r r g r S eṁ da rō ma s n ṇ p hā nu / N r S bhā vu ṇ S ṇ u u ṡ r r g r S leṁ da rō ma s n s r s ṇ ṣ hā nu / N s r s bhā vu ṇ S ṇ u u s r r g r s ṇ s r g r leṁ da rō ma s ṇ /s / r s ṇ p. hā nu / Ṇ s g r s r bhā vu ṇ S ṇ u s r leṁ da ṇ S u u n s r M r r m P laṁ da ri ki s M p M p r va ṁ ṁ da R R g r S r s naṁ mu ṇ S ṇ lu ṇ S r M r m P aṁ da rī ki m p /n p vaṁ P /n p m da M /p m r R g r S r s na ṁ mu ṇ S ṇ lu s r eṁ da ṇ S lu m n s r M r r m p aṁ da ri ki i p n p n ṡ n ṡ n i va ṁ da P /n p M /p m R /g r S r s na a ṁ mu ū ṇ S ṇ lu ū s r eṁ da ṇ S lu 4. ṇ s r M r r m p m aṁ da ri ki i p n p n ṡ n ṡ ṙ i i va ṁ ṁ da Ṡ ṙ ṡ N ṡ n P n p M p m na ṁ mu B 1506

272 Compositions of various composers Appendix B R g r lu r s s ṇ s r eṁ da anupallavi p m p r m r caṁ du ru va r m P p M rṇu ni m /n P ā ā P : : p m p r m r : caṁ du ru va r m p n p n p m rṇu ni R yaṁ da R g r s ṇsrm : : /n p p m R s s ṇ s : ca ṁda mu na r M r hṙ R m p m da p p m P yā ra P ṙ ṙ Ṙ ġṙṡ n ṡ ṙġ viṁdamu na r M r hṙ R m p m da / N n Ṡ bra hmā S ṙ ṡ Ṡ ṙṡn N ṡnp naṁdama nu P n p m M p m r bha vi ṁ n P m R g r S r s cu vā ā ṇ S ṇ s r ā ā reṁ da caraṇams svara sāhityas p m p r m r prē ma mu ppi R m p m m ri go nu m / n P vē ḷa P p m p r m r prē ma mu ppa r m p n p n p m r go nu R R g r s vē ḷa ṇsrm/ n p p m R s\ n s a a nā ma mu dala r M r R m p m cē vā ru p m P nnā ru P ṙ ṙ.r ġ ṙṡ n ṡ Rgr rāmabha ktu ṡ n ṡ ṙ ḍai ṡ n p na / N /Ṡ tyā ga B 1507

273 Compositions of various composers Appendix B R Ṡ Ṡ ṙṡn N ṡnp rājavi nu P n p m M p m r r tu ni i ki n P m ni r g r s ja ṇ S ṇ s r dā u leṁ da S S s s s s s ṇ sā ma gā ṇ s ṇ ṇ s ṇ \ p. na lō la P ṃ p. ṇ s ma na si ja R R R g r r g lā va ṁ r r g r r g r r ṁ ṇya dha ṁ nya \S g r mū rdha ṁ r s ṇ s r ṁ ṁ nyu leṁ da R g r r g r r s ṇ S S r s mā na sa va na ca ra va ra saṁ cā ra mu s r s s ṇ p. / G ni li pi mū rti bā g g r s r g R gugapo ḍaga nē r s ṇ s r ṁ ṁ nyu reṁ da p p m r r p p m m / P m r r sa ra gu na pā da mu la ku svā ṁ ta ma nu /n P /n p m m p sa rō ja mu na sa ma r /G r raṇamu sē yu pm r r s s n s r vā reṁda 4. p m m p r r g r ṇ s r g r r s ṇ ha ri gu ṇa ma ṇa la gu sa ra mu lu ga ḷa mu na R p ṇ s R r. śō bi llu bha g g r s rmp kta kō ṭu lilalō p. ṇ s R r m p N m p n S r te li vi tō ce li mi tō ka ru ṇa ka lgi ġ r r ġ ṙ r ṡ ja ga me lla nu su dhā s s n p p mr g dṙ ṣṭi cē brō r S ṇ s r cu vā reṁ da 5. s s n p / r ṣ ṇ P. / g R s ṇ p. pa ti ta pā va nu ḍa nē pa rā tpa ru ni ṃ P. gu riṁ p ṇ s R ci pa ra mā r/ g r s r m P rtamagu nijamā B 1508

274 Compositions of various composers Appendix B p. ṇ S p P m r m p n P ṡ n rga mu dō nu bā ḍu cu nu sa llā pa mu P ṙ ṡ n P /g tā sva ra la yā di R ṡ n pmr g rāgamulateli yu R s ṇ s r vā leṁ da 6. p. ṇ s \P. ṇ ṃ p. ṇ \ Ṛ ṃ p. /ṇ p. ṃ ho ya lu mī ra na ḍa lu ka lgu sa ra su ni /r R g r s ṇ s sa dā ka nu la jū ṇ/g r s ju cunu ṇ p ṇ s. pulakaśa R m r m / P n m p n S r rī ru la yi ā na ṁ da pa yō dhi /ġ R ṡ n p / ṡ n ni ma gnu la yi mu da n p m r p m p ṁ bunanu yaśamu ga r g r s ṇ la vā s r reṁda 7. r m p N m p n \ R m p n p m pa ra ma bhā ga va ta mau ni va ra śa śi r R g r s ṇ p. vi bhā ka ra sa na ka ṃ p ṇ d n/ṡ. sanaṁ da na p. Ṣ ṇ s r R /g r s r m p n di gī śa su ra kiṁ pu ru ṣa ka na ka ka p /n m /p R /g r s śi pu su ta nā ra da r m p m mp tu ṁburu /n p /n \M p R m P n m p n s paa va na sū nu bā la vaṁ dra dha ra śu ka r R / ġ ṙ ṡ n p sa7rō ja bha va bhū m p n n /Ṡ suravaru lu ṙ ġ ṙ R /r r s n ṡ ṙ Ṡ s n p pa ra ma pā va nu lu gha nu lu śā śva tu lu m p r m r p m n ka ma la bha va su kha mu p Ṡ n p m r g sadānubhavu lukhā B 1509

275 Compositions of various composers Appendix B r S ṇ s r ka eṁ da 8. P r m p \ R m r m P nī mē nu nā ma vai i m P r g r R bha vaṁ mu la nu nī r/g r s ṇ p ṇ s. parā kramadhai p. ṇ s \ P. p. / R /g r s / P p m r rya mu la śāṁ ta mā na sa nī vu a nu m p n \ R m p n va ca na sa tya mu na s r m p / raghuvara N p n nīyeḍa ṡ n Ṡ n ṡ r R ṙ ġ ṙ R ġ ṙ sa dbha kti yu ja niṁ ca ka nu du rma da r ġ ṙ R ṙ ṡ ṙ mu la nu ka lla jē si ṡ S ṅ napaṭṭ p n ṡ ṙ ni mati ġ ṙ r Ṡ s n n p m r m p n no riṁ gi saṁ ta saṁ pu na nu ku ṇa bha ja /Ṡ n P m nā naṁ da \R /g s ṇ s kī rta namusē r S ṇ s r yu vā ā reṁ da 9. R p n s R n s r g r bhā ga va ta rā mā ya ṇa R P gī tā s ṇ p. di śru ti ṃp ṇ s R p. ṇ. śā strapurā ṇapu \P. r s R g R s ṇ s r m p n ma rma mu lan śi vā di ṣa ṇma ta mu la \P p m R / p p gī ḍa mu lan mu m r ppati R /n pp mukkō /ṡ n P / ṙ R ṡ n p P P ġ ṙ ṭi su rāṁ ta raṁ ga mu la bhā vaṁ mmu la ṙ ġ ṙ R ṙ R ne ri gi bhā va rā ġ ṙ r g r R ṙ ga layā di saukhya B 1510

276 Compositions of various composers Appendix B ṡ S p P /ṙ R / ġ ṙ ṡ n p n s mu cē ci rā yu vu lga li gi ni ra va dhi ṙ Ṡ ṡ su khā tmu S P lai tyā R p P R r garājāptulai g r s ṇ s r na vā reṁ da B 1511

277 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.44 kīrtana ārabhi rāga ādi tāḷa Tyāgarājasvāmi pallavi P m p m \ g r r s s n \d d ḍ sā dhi ṁ ce S ḍ s nē ō r m \ g r s r /m ma na sā / P m p m \ g r r s s n \ḍ ḍ sā dhi ṁ ce S d s nē ō r s m \g r s r m ma na sā / m P m p m \ g r r s s n ḍ ḍ sā dhi ṁ ce S d s nē ō r m s r r p d /ṡ ma na sā S s s d p m /p m \ g r s n \ḍ ḍ sā dhi ṁ ce S ḍ s nē ō r M \ g r s r m ma na sā P sā anupallavi d d P m p m \ g r r s r s bō dhi ṁ ci na sa m g r /d d p nmā rga va m p d ṡ s ṙ ca na mu lu r ṁ \ g ṙ ṡ ṙ ṡ s d d p po ṁ ku jē si tā m /p m \ g r r pa ṭṭi na m p d m p d /ṙ pa ṭṭu P sā B 1512

278 Compositions of various composers Appendix B caraṇam p /d \P p p m r /m m p sa ma yā ni ki ta gu svara sāhityam P m/p m\ gr r m\ g r ṙ dē va kī va su p m sa ma P P m\ g R / m \ g R s /r s s raṁgē śuḍusa dga ṁ gā janakuḍu p d d / ṙ d p mā ṭa S s s n ḍ D dē vu la nē G. G. /s S saṁ gī ta sāṁ m /p m \ g r s r m lā ḍe ne ḍ p ḍ S s r m. kiṁ ci na ṭu s r R s r m pra dā ya ku ḍu p m sa ma D D p/d p P d p m m m/ p m gōpī janamanōrathamo saṁga lē p m sa ma 4. d p mp d Ṡ d d p P m \ g r r vanitalasadāso kkajēyucunu mro \ g r R R r m k nē gē li yu r s S S \ d d kka jē sē pa ra P P \ S r m jē sē vā ḍu P m \ g r r S tma yu ḍa ti yu gā B 1513

279 Compositions of various composers Appendix B S / ṡ Ḋ p m p d S \ n d /Ṙ ṙ ka yaśōdata nayudaṁcumu daṁpu p m sa ma 5. d p d p m p d \P r m p mp d paramabhakta va tsaluḍu suguṇapā d d P s \ nd/ ṙ Ṡ ṡ ṁ \ g ṙ kalibā dha la tī rcuvāḍa nucunē s s ṇ \ D ṡ d \P d na nu mu ddu pe ṭṭa P m \ g R D rā vā ru ṁ ḍā ṡ S ṡ d d p p hṙdaṁbu jamuna jū \M p m \ g ṙ r m na vvu ka ṁ ṭu ha ri D p m \ g r R ja nma ma na ghu ḍī p p m\ gr s r m p sa s P M p m g R m \ g r R r 6. harē rāmacaṁdra raghukulēśa d S s d R ṙ ṡ ṙ m\g /d d P rī sō darāja virāja turagarā s r s S s S mṙ du su bhā ṣa śē g ṙ P m \ g r / d ja rā ja nu ta ni cu cu ṁḍaga p m \ g r / d d P ṣa śa ya na pa ra nā \P/ s n\d /r r s rā ma yā paghana m\ gr ṡ r ṡ S ṡ d d p P p sa ra sī ruhadaḷākṣa yanucuvēḍu p m sa ma m \ g r r s S ko ṁ nna na nnu tā P m \ g r s r m brō va ka nu B 1514

280 Compositions of various composers Appendix B 7. R r / p m g P /d d p P p m\ r śrīvēṁkaṭēśa su prakāśa sa r s r M \ g r m p d P p / ṡ s \d na kanakāṁbara dharalasanma kuṭa ku P r ḍ s R ḍ rvō nna ta sa jja na /S s s d /R r mā na sa ni kē ta d / ṙ r s \D m \ g /d d p P m \ g r R s S s d s pogaḍagā tyāgarājagēyu ḍu mā ṁ ḍa la vi rā ji ta d R s m \ g r na vē ndru ḍai na ṙ R s r s S ha rē ya nu cu nē /P pp m \ g r m rā ma ca ṁ dru ḍu p p P p pm p dp samayānikitagu p /d ṡ r P/r r m sama yā nikitagu /d dp m pm m g r r s /r s ṇ sa dbha ktulana ḍa rr M p d ṡ d dpm p mpd amari ka gā nā m P p mā ṭa p D / ṡ d p mā ḍa p \ ṇ d n s r ta vi ṭḷa M \ g r s r m lā ḍē nē M \ g r s r lā ḍē nē r r R na nē d p d p m \ g r pū ja s /r s n S ko na nē ss ḍ s R r / g pm\ alugava dda na R R nē s r s S S /d d p p m \ g r /m\gr r m\ g r vi mu gu la tō cē ra s r s s r po ṁ gga na r r r r nē B 1515

281 Compositions of various composers Appendix B s d r s m \ g r m\ gr r vedaga lgi nadā /d d p p m\ g r /m p p r m p da ma śa mā disu kha ṙ /ṁ\ġ ṙ ṡ ṙṡṡ ṡ s d/ nd tyā garā janu tu Ṡ mpm\ g r rs s n \ḍḍ sā dhi ṁce s m \ g r s r m ḷu go ṁ m p d m p d / ṡ dā ya ku p m p m \ g r ḍu ce ṁ ta S nē p m P mma na nē ṡ s R ḍa gu r m p d m p d r rā ka nē S S S B 1516

282 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.45 tāna varṇam rītigauḷa rāga aṭa tāḷa Tiruvoṭṭiyūr Vīṇa Kuppayyar pallavi ( ṇ s ṇ s g r g m sā ā mi i ) p m g r S va na jā ā kṣā ṇ s g r s s ṇ ṇ ṇ p. ṇ ṇ s ṇ s /G g M ni i i i nē e e e ē ē g m p / d p m g m e e kō o o p p m m g r / p m o ri i i i i i g r s ṇ s /g g m : P / d p m g m p p m g r na a a a a : vē e e sa a ṭa a d / n n d \M g m g r g r g m g m /n n d a dī i i rci brō o o va ṇ s ṇ s g r g m a a vai i i i / d m p / p g m g r i i i / G \ S yyā ā anupallavi S n d n p d n n d m g ma na a si i i i ju m /d p m g r g m d P m g r p M g r s ī ī n i i fa ṁ ṁ B 1517

283 Compositions of various composers Appendix B ṇ s ṇ s g r g m ṁ ṁ nna a a m /n n d m M n ca a a a kka a N s n S : n ṡ ġ ġ ṁ g ṁ ġ ṙ /Ġ g a a ni : mā a vē e ē e ṙ ṡ n n ṡ /ġ ṙ ṡ n ṡ n n d m g m g r g m ē ṇu u gō o pā ā n d m n n ṡ S la a yī n d m g m / d p m i vē e e g r s ṇ s /g g m e e muktāyi svaram P d p m g m / p m g r g m n d m g M m g r r G g r s ṇ p. ṇ ṇ s ṇ g r g m pd d p\m g r s g g m g n : : P d p m g M p m g r g M p d d p \M g r s g g m g m n d m N n s n ṡ / Ġ g ṙ ġ ṁ Ġ g ṙ ṡ n n ṡ / ġ ṙ ṡ n n /S s n d \M m g r S B 1518

284 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n D M g r s ṇ S G G m caraṇam S N n d M aṁ nni ṭi m g m d p m g r g m p m g r R g r s ṇ ki i i i nī i i vē s g r g m g m /d di i i i kka p m g g /M a a a ni g m / d p m g r ṇ : : S N ṇ d M i i : : aṁ nni ṭi ī p m g g /M a a nī svarams M g r / g r S s ṇ \P. ṇ ṇ s ṇ g r g g m p p m g r s s g r ṇ ṇ p. ṇ ṇ s ṇ s g g m s M m g r s G g r s g g m \ G m ṇ n s\ṇ s p M / p g r B 1519

285 Compositions of various composers Appendix B g M / n d m / N n d m M g r s S n \P p. ṇ n s s p m g r s m g r g g m m p m /d p m p g p m g r p m g r s r ṇ s g g m s g g m n d m n n s S n d m M g r s n D M g r ṇ 4. p /d d m g g m /p g r p m g r ṇ s n g r s ṇ s ṇ ṇ ḍ ṃ ṇ ṇ s /g r s / m g r / p m g / n d m g m n n ṡ n g ṙ n r s n d m /n d m / p g r s r ṇ 5. / n n d m g g m /d d m g r g g /m m / p m g / m g g r s / g r s /r ṇ / s ṇ ṇ ḍ ṃ / ṇ ṇ s ṇ g r g g m g /p m / d p m g r ṇ s /g g m : : p \M g r s / n D m g m / n N ṡ n s / ġ g g r Ṡ ṙ ṡ s n N n d m g g g / ṁ ġ ṙ / g B 1520

286 Compositions of various composers Appendix B g / m g r s Ṡ s n d m /N d m g m G g r s r ṇ S N n d M a nni ṭi m g m / d p m g r g m p m g r R g r s ṇ ki i i i nī i i vē s g r g m g m /d di i kka p m g g /M a a ni G R S ā ā B 1521

287 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.46 tāna varṇam nārāyaṇagauḷa rāga aṭa tāḷa Tiruvoṭṭiyūr Vīṇa Kuppayyar pallavi ( S s ṇ s r a a ā ) m g r g r g S ma gu va a a ṇ s ṇ / g r / g s r ṇ s r r s ṇ ṇ s ṇ ṇ ḍ p. ni i ṁ ne e e e e e e e e kō o o ṃ P ṇ ṇ s ṇ s o o ri i i i r m g r /p m G i i i cā r /g r s r ṇ s r : m g r / g r s r r m m p r a a la a a : ma a a a a ru ū ū ū ū lu m p N n n d p d m p d m p m m g r / g r s u u u u ko o o o o na a a a ṇ ḍ p ṇ s r p m. di i i i i i i m g r g r s ṇ r i i i i i \ S ṇ ḍ p ṇ s r :. rā ā ā ā ā ā ā : anupallavi S n d n n d p d m p p so ga a a su u u la a a m g r /g r s ṇ s r M m m g r r N n n d p a a a a a ḍi i i pai ī i i i B 1522

288 Compositions of various composers Appendix B /ṡ n d P /d p m i i i cā a a a g R g s r m p a lā a da a m p n n Ṡ : n d p n n s n s ṙ n ṡ ṙ a a jū : u u u u u ḍa a a a m M g r ṡ n n / ġ ṙ ġ ṡ ṙ n / ṡ n d / n d p a rā a a a śrī i i i i vē e e e e e m g r m p /ṡ S ṇu u u u gō n d p P m g r o o pā a a s ṇ ḍ P. ṇ s r a a lā a a a muktāyi svaram /m g r / g r s ṇ ṇ / g r s r ṇ s ṇ ṇ d p ṇ s r / m m g r m p / n n d p d m /p m g r /g r s r r / m m P p m ġ ṙ ṡ / g r s n s / r n d p m p /d m g r s \M m m g r / N n n d p m P n n ṡ n s r ṁ r m p n s r Ṡ s n d n P m g r S ṇ s r caraṇam B 1523

289 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n nn n d n d P ci ṁ mta a a m p m n d n p d m p d p M m m g r / g r s nā ā ā a a a a ḍā a a a di i ṇ ḍ p ṇ s r m g. gā a a nī i i r r m m P p i i tō o m g r g s r m p o o o o o o : : d n d n nn n P ci ṁ nna a r r m m P i i tō svarams M g r s ṇ ḍ p. ṃ P. ṇ s r R m g r / g r s / p m g r g s r m p ṇ s r p \Ṃ m m g r / g r s ṇ s / g r s r Ṇ n ṇ p. ḍ ṃ p ṇ s r / m g r / p m g r / n d / n p d. m p n ṡ ṙ s =bs N n n d p p \M m m g B 1524

290 Compositions of various composers Appendix B r / g R s r m p p /d m / p m g r /g r s / m g r g s r ṇ s ṇ ṇ ḍ p. ṇ s r / p m g r m p / n d p m p n n s n / g r s ṙ n / ṡ n d /n p / d m /p m p r / g r s ṇ s r m p 4. m g r / g r s ṇ ṇ S ṇ s ṇ ḍ ṇ ḍ p. ṃ ṃ P. ṃ p. ṇ s r ṇ S r m g r M p n d M p M g r g s r ṇ s r /m M m m ġ ṙ / ġ ṙ s ṙ n ṡ n n d p m p m m g r g r s S p N n n d p / N d n s r ṡ ṙ / g r s / ġ r s S n d p P m g r s Ṇ r m m p n nn ci ṁ ṇ s r m g nī i i R g r \ S ī i tō B 1525

291 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.47 tāna varṇam kēdāragauḷa rāga ādi tāḷa Gōvondasāmayyā pallavi N S R nī sa ri R g r r g ma nne a a g r S ṡ ṇ s r do o o ra a a s g R ṇ s r s / g r / M g r S le va a a a ru u lē r s n /r s /r s ṇ e e ra a ḍ p /ṇ ṇ ḍ d d p. ni i p. ṃ P : : p. p. / ṇ S mā a a : : ne la tā ā S r g r g s r ni nu u kō ō ō ō r g \R r m ō ō ri yu u P p d p m g g \R r /S ū u u u u u u ṁ nna di m g \R r g ra a a a a g r \ S s r a a a a a anupallavi R / p M P nā sā ā /n n d d d p / n d mi i i i i i va a p P m m /d p m a a a ra a a g r / g g r s ṇ s r m g r r m p / n a da a a vē e e ṁ ka a a a d p m p ṡ \ n d p a a ṭē e e / N S eṁ drā B 1526

292 Compositions of various composers Appendix B Ṡ R ṁ Ġ ṙ / g r S na vya a a ku ū ūn m p n s r g \R Ṡ n d sa a a a a a ṁ muktāyi svara sāhityam ṇ s r m g r s r s ṇ d p / Ṇ s r ne ra sa ra sa ta ka li gi na do ra nī va ni /g ṙ ṡ S ṙ ṡ n d p ṙ S n d p ka ra mu jeṁ di cu ba ka ra gu ṇā ḷi va ra s ṇ d p\ vi na ya mu N S R nī sa ri caraṇam g r ga ri s n ṡ ṙ s /g \R ī ī ī ī p /n n d p /d d p dra a a a a /M g r m p / N mā ni ni ma ti bā /n D p m g r m ka ḷā ni ka ra ma ru / p M P ma pa ṡ n ṡ ṙ ṡ n d p a a a a p /d p p m g g s a a a a d p m p / N ṡ ṙ ya ka ma ru lai ka ni p /n d p m g \R du ra mu na ce li nī d ṇa a a ti P / n n d P P dp/ d dp Pm p /dp pm g g r/ i i nēe e ēlu kō o o o ra ga ri p ma pa M P B 1527

293 Compositions of various composers Appendix B svara sāhityas R S r s \ Ṇ ḍ p / Ṇ s r g \ jā la mu. sē yu ṭa va lla ba la mā / R s \Ṇ ḍ p. Ṇ s R / g r dēla rāyidi vē ḷarā gari ṇ s R r /m g r / g r \S vi ni rā ce li ra ti ka na rā r S ṇ ḍ p. / Ṇ s r / g s r /m g r pa mōpadika yeṁtani delupu du gari R g R s ṇ s r g \ S r n S ṇ a da rā ce li ki du go nē ḍu ne rā vi S r g s s r / g s ss r g R s vadu ra mro kkedanunīgu mikkili ma ṇ s R g s r m G r p \M g r adi tā ḷa vacamugādu ga dā gari 4. D p m g r s ṇ R s ṇ ḍ p / N. vī nu la ki ta vu ga gā na mu vi na rā s /g \R \ Ṇ s r ca la mā cā lu ra ṇ s R g \R ka nu go na rā r g s r g \R rā ḷoi a da na mā r g \S r /m g r da na bā ṇa mu le da S r /m G dā a la nā /M g r / G r s mā ya la mā ṭa la ṇ s r S /r s n vi ra ha tā pa ma ṇa s ṇ s r S r ṇ ya ma di ni mā ya va s /g r /g n /r s r ga di ya ga ma da va ti r /m G r s r g ḍe la nā ga ku ba lu B 1528

294 Compositions of various composers Appendix B R s ṇ S / g \R s ṇ R g nā ṇe mu lē vi rā ji lu maṁ ci R S m g r /g r s ṇ s r m g r nānā ṭi va lenesada yuḍavayi gari S p d d p 5. M P / n n d ē rā ce li ni cē ra bi li ci gā P r mm g R g s soṁ mmu lo saṁ gi su d p m g ra na mu lu nu pa lu S r g S r s gaṁ bu na gū ḍi di r s ṇ s r m g r ku cu ca nu vo sa ga vu p m p /d M p / N d m P d P /n d sā ri ba lku la bā ri kī va na / \M p N d d p m p D p m g r vō ri nī vē śa ra ṇa ni kō ri na yi di Ṡ ṙ Ṡ n d p Ṡ n \N d p vā ri jā kṣi pa lu sā re sā re ku \R /P m g \R M g r rā ra mma ne rā rā ga ri 6. p m p / n d m P m g r /g \r tā ri ta ki ṇa jheṁ di na di na mi ṭu nē ca ga va gu vā D p \M /d p jā ri bā ri ki D p m p m /n d a la ce lu la jē ri S p \N d p mē ra meṁ ca ku r n s r g \r dha ṇaṁ yi ti ta gu vā P m g r m p tā ri be ta ru cu /valin ṡ Ṙ ṁ g ṙ vā ri mā ṭa li ni m p /N d p m g la la nā ma ṇi ni nu r r m p / D p dha ṇē ku so ga su kā ḍa n d m p / N ṡ \n m g g r / M p / N d ta ha dhi nu ta ka pa lu ma ru tē nē lī nu ce li mō vi yā d p m /n D ni ru ci ka na rā p /n D p m g r ti dhri mi ta ka na rā ni nu pa yi B 1529

295 Compositions of various composers Appendix B m m p p m m /d p / s n /r s s n d d ta ka jhe nu ta ri ta da ko ni yu pa ra ti ne na ya ka vi ra ha mu ca nu p \M / d \P m g r m p /n n d d p dha ṇaṁ yu ḍo ya daṁ cu nu ka ni ka ra mu na ta na m p n ṡ ṙ ṡ n ṡ ṙ ṁ ġ ṙ s /ġ ṙ ṡ ta jha nu ni ka jha nu ta ka mu nu pa ṭi va lē ma na mu na ca na vi na ya mu r m p.n d D p m d p P m g r ta jheṁ ta va le na ne ra sā mi vi na va tē mi ga ri p m P p / n ṇa ta jheṁ na ṭa rā ca la Ṡ n ṡ r /m g r kau gi ṭa na la mu ka s n d p n ṡ ṙ ṡ di ki ta ka na na vi i ltu ni ra p M S d d \M p p \M ta ka jheṁ ma ṭa rā vi ṭa rā d p n ṡ ṙ ṡ n d dhri mi ku ca mu la na du mu ka n d d p m g g r dhri mi ta ka jhe ṇu mu na ni nu pe na ko na S S mā sā a a B 1530

296 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.48 tāna varṇam nāṭakurañji rāga aṭa tāḷa Kūvaṇasāmi Ayyā pallavi S s ṇ s /r r S ṇ s /r / G iṁ da a a a a a lu /M M g m / p m / p m g m G \S ka a je e e e e ē ē ṇ s /r r s n s /r si i i i r S ṇ ṇ ḍ ṇ s i ī i i i s /r s n : ḍ p ḍ ṇ Ṣ ṇ /s ṇ ḍ ḍ p.. ḍ /ṇ ḍ n tē e : e ye ṭu la a a a a S ṇ Ḍ ṇ p ḍ ṇ ḍ ṇ S ṇ s /r g m. tā a a a a a a a ḷu u tu u g r / g p ṇ ḍ Ṇ ra a a a a \S a S M M g m /p m /n m g m ni ṁ da a a a a G \Ṡ n ṣ Ṇ ṇ s /m m G p m a jē a ē si i ī ca a /n n D d p D a a a a d n ṡ s n kka a a a Ṡ : ṡ n ṡ /r r Ṡ n n d p ṡ s n d d n : vē e e e e ē e ni nu u u kō o o o B 1531

297 Compositions of various composers Appendix B m /N n d n Ṡ n / r r ṡ S n d n Ṡ ṡ pa a a a a a a a a la a a na a a n d m /p m g m g mi i nī i i vu u muktāyi svaram sāhityam jati n S s /N s /g s ṇ s /r g /m g ni raṁ ta raṁ mu ga na nu sa ri ga mā li ta jhe ku tā ri ti ki ṭa ta ka tadhi nna ṃ /Ṇ n ṇ ḍ ṇ s ṇ ma ni nni pu ṭu sa ra ta diṁ dhi mi ku taa ka G m /n n n d n \ P d n ṇ s r g m g /M \ ni lu pa ga va śa mā gā ra viṁ ci na nu nī vu nā dhi mi dha ri ki ṭa tōṁ tā ha dhī nu ta ka ṇaṁ ta ṇaṁ n d /n n / ṡ n d d a a sa a a a s /r \S u u ū s /g s S n r s n s ṇ Ḍ ṇ p. ḍ ḍ /Ṇ ḍ mi yu nu jē ri vi ri śa ru ni kē ḷi pa da ra va ddu dhi mi ta dhi tta ri ta da ṇa ta jheṁ ta ri ta da ṇaṁ ta / r S s ṇ ḍ ṇ s sa jē ri ba li ki te dha ṇē ku ki ṭa ta ka d n ṡ S n ṡ g \s s s \n n n d d d / n p : : : n d n S S n d ma na sā sā ra ga dha ṇa tā tā ki ṭa M g s mā na ra dhīṁ ki ṇa caraṇam ma ru lu dī rca ka nu mō ḍi jē si daṁ dha na la dha ṇa ta jheṁ ta ka ta dhi tta dhi tta ti na ki ṭa / n s d /n d m M ka la ya ga ca la mā dhi mi ta ka dhi mi tīṁ B 1532

298 Compositions of various composers Appendix B M m g \S s ṇ s /g mā ṭā ā ā a a Ḍ ḍ ṇ /s ṇ ḍ ṇ ā na a a svaram sāhityam jati S S n D n S nā sā mi yiṁ ta kō tā thai yya tā ta dhi \S n d n s n /r s ṇ ḍ ḍ ṇ s ḍ / d n p. dha nē e e e rci i i na a a a s ṇ s /r \S pai i i i ī s s n / R \S s n d pa mu sē ya ya ṭu la ta jheṁ tā ta ki ṭa ṇ s \Ṇ ḍ Ṇ nē ra mē mi dā jheṁ ta kuṁ ta dhi S \Ṇ s r g rā nī sa ri ga tā dhī nu ta ka Ṇ s / g s ṇ S N s ṇ s \N S ṇ nī sa ri sa nu jē ri mu da mu tō nu na tā ri ta ki ṭa dhi nnā di mi ta dhiṁ dhī ṁ ja M /d m g G kau gi ṭa nu gra ṇaṁ ki ṇa ku jha ḍ ṇ \P. ḍ ṇ ḍ ṇ ca ka nā ku de lu pa tta ka ta dda ṇa ta ṇa ḍ ṇ \P. D p. ḍ n S S s ṇ s r g ya mu gā nu pa da mu pā ṭi mi gu la ni nu nu ta tāṁ tāṁ ta ka ta dhiṁ dhiṁ ku ta ku ja ga /m g s S n /r s mmu ko ni sā re ka lu kki ṇa ku jheṁ ta ri ta B 1533

299 Compositions of various composers Appendix B \Ṇ ḍ Ṇ s r g kē la nī s ri ga ta naṁ dhi nu ta ka G m g \S S \ N s /g s ṇ Ḍ ḍ ḍ ṇ ṇ ka nna ḍa jē si nī ma na su na dā ca ka yi ka ṇ S S ṇ / r s gi mo vyā ni ma ru / G m /n n D n m /d d n n /S s n d gā da mi ni rē ci du ra mu ga na nu n sa ma ra p ḍ ṇ S r g m. lu ka ra sā mi ga vi D / Ṇ s r g nē nī da ga la /S s s ṇ ḍ /Ṇ Ḍ ṇ ṇ ṃ Ḍ Ḍ ṇ ḍ sa ṁ ta ta mu nī dā na nu pa rā kē la bi ṇ Ḍ ḍ n s s /r ni kē ḷi ni ra va ḷi /n d m / d m g g m g s /g s ṇ / r s ṇ / ṣ ṇ ḍ ṇ tu la nu ka la si ga ma ka mu na ga ḷa ra va mu va ga la p m g \S / g s ṇ ra ha sā ga ra mu B 1534

300 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.49 tāna varṇam sāvēri rāga aṭa tāḷa Tirunrlvēli Veṅku Bhāgavatar pallavi s r g R ḍ ḍ /R nī i vē dhi i i \S S s r / g r s / g r s ṇ ḍ / R kka a ni i i na ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ S r s r m p mmi na a a \s R /m / P m p da a a a a a /d d m g r s ṇ ḍ : s r m p d m p d P a na a ra a a : ne e e va a ru u m m P s r /D n \P / d m g r /d D ī i ī i i yē e ē e ē li u g \R s n d s u ū u u u kō S / g g r / g g o o o R S rā ā anupallavi / D p d / n d p m d bhā va a a a a a ju s /M d m g r r /m / p m / d d p d /s n d p m ḍau ū ū vē e ē ṁ ka a a ṭē e e e e e = B 1535

301 Compositions of various composers Appendix B p d Ṡ śva ra ye n n d / n d p m / n ṭṭē e e e ṁ dru u d m p d d Ṡ ṙ ṡ ṙ / ṁ ġ \Ṙ / g ṙ ṡ ṡ ṡ u ni ba a a a a a ka a a rṇa a ṙ /ġ ṙ ṡ s s /ṙ r ṡ n d /n n d s / n d m p d a a va a a ta a a ra a a ku u d / g r ṡ n d /ṡ mā a a r a a ye s n d m g g r s ṭṭē ndra dhī i i ra muktāyi svaram / g r s r S ṇ ḍ / r S ṇ d s r s r / p M g r s r /m / p D \M g r s r g \S r / m / P m G m p m D S d p m p d ṡ / P m g r s / d p m g r / n D / n p / d m p d S / r s / g r ṡ / ṙ S d ṡ \N d / N d p d /g \R s n d / r s s n d / N d p m g r ss r s n d caraṇam d s n D p / D ci nna a a d /n n d p m p / d m p d d m g r s s /r s /p nā a a a a a a ḍe e e B 1536

302 Compositions of various composers Appendix B m / d p / n D e ē m / P m g r m p ni ī i i vu / D / n d m p d d s n D p / D na a a a a nnu ci i nna a g m / P m r m p ni ī i i i vu svarams / D d P d \M / p g r S n D s r m p d S n n d \M P d /r S n d m p d M p d m p d n\ D \ M p d m p D P m / n m dc g r s /r s /p m / d p / n d /r s / g r s S n d p d S d \ m g r s r m p d d dd D n d d / n p d m p / D P m /N d m g r s ṇ ḍ / R S ṇ ḍ s r B 1537

303 Compositions of various composers Appendix B / p M p d m D P d \ M p d m p / d m g r s r m p d m p d Ṡ ṙ /ġ ṙ ṡ d / r s n d / N d p m p d / ġ ṙ ṡ / ṙ S n d p m P d / R d Ṡ n D m p d /Ṡ s n n d / N d p / D m p / D m p / d m / p g r S s ṇ ḍ s r m p d p d r r ṡ / ġ ṙ ṡ r d p d /R d ṙ Ṡ n d m g r s r m p d d ṡ n D p / S ci i nna a a d /n n d p m p d m p /d d m g r s s /r s /p nā a a a a a a ḍe e e e m / d p / n D e e e e ē m / P m g r m p ni i vu na a a nnu m p /d d p m g r s r /g g r s ṇ ḍ S cai i i i i ba a a a s r m p d m P d p d Ṡ n d m g g r s ṭṭa a a a a a ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṇ D / g g r / g g ci ī gu u u R S ḍī ī B 1538

304 Compositions of various composers Appendix B D p d / n d p m / D ma nne e e e do S S P m g r s /p P m / d d p d /ṡ n d p m ra a a la a a lō o mi i i p d S nna gā d / n d n d p m /n ve e la a si i d m p d d Ṡ ṙ ṡ ṙ g g Ṙ / g ṙ ṡ ṡ ṡ i na ma a ja a a ga a a dvī ī r / g r s s s /r r ṡ n d /ṅ n d p / n d m p d i i ra a a rā ā ma a a ku u d /ġ ṙ ṡ n d Ṡ mā a a ra a a ye s n d m g g r s ṭṭē ēṁ dra dhī i i ra muktāyi svaram /g r s r S ṇ ḍ / r S ṇ ḍ s r s r / p M g r s r /m / p D \M g r s r g \S r /m / P m D m p m D P d p m p d s /P m g r s / d p m g r / n D / n p / d m p d Ṡ / r s / g r ṡ / ṙ Ṡ d ṡ \N d / N d p d /g \R s n d /ṙ s s n d / N d p m g r ss r s ṇ ḍ nīvē dikkani B 1539

305 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.50 tāna varṇam ānandabhairavi rāga aṭa tāḷa Śyāmā Śāstri pallavi s /d p m g r g m p m g m sa a a a a mi i g r / g r S s n s g r s / r s \n n ni i ra ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ n s /G r g m m g m / ṁ ṁ ma a d p m / p m a a a a a a g g / G : ṇ Ṇ s ṇ s g ṛ g M g a a vē : sa a a a a a a a m P / d m p g m g r g r S /d P /d ra a a sa a a a a a kṣi ī i m p g M g r s i i i ī i i ṇ S d p m g m i ī i i vyā a g r / G ḷa a a anupallavi s s / d p m g p \ M g / p kā a a a a mu u m g m \G g m / p g r S s /r s s \ṇ ṇ u u ni i i ī ga ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ B 1540

306 Compositions of various composers Appendix B g M / d p m / p m n s ṇ s g r g ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ nna a a a g g / M : p m p Ṡ n ṡ Ṁ g m g a mā : kā a7a aṁ cī i ī vā a a s \S s n ī va ra r g r S ṡ / g ṙ ṡ / r ṡ \ n n / s N ṡ a a a su u ḍai i i i na śrī i d S d p M g p m g /p m g r ṇ da rā a a ja a a a a a a g r g muktāyi svaram sāhityam s /g r S s n n s n d / g sa ra sa jē ri sa ma ra tu la mē s /g r / G m p d gha na mu jē yu cu nu M ṇ s m g r S g m p d p ṡ \n mā ni ni vi na vē sā ra sa na ya na śa bā P m \g g m p g M g r ṇ g m p d ṭi yu pa ra tu la cē ne na ga ga ri ma mī ra ga nu d p m / P m g g ta ḷi ru bō ṇi bha ḷa n ṡ ṁ ġ ṙ ġ ṙ Ṡ /g r ṡ / ṙ s n N ṡ p d su va ra su gu ṇa sā ma ja ga ma na vi śā la ja gha p Ṡ s n d p d na sā ṭa va ru dha ra p \ G / p m g r ṇ ḍu gā ra va mu ga la caraṇam p \M / d p m g m nu nī sa ri ga nē na B 1541

307 Compositions of various composers Appendix B m g M g m P / d ma a a a a ru Ṇ s ṇ s g r a ṇa a a s P / d p m g g ve e e e e e : : p m g r S ṇ ṇ s ṇ s g r s s /r s s \ṇ u u ū ni i i i i bā a a a a / G m g m p a mu u u lu M g m P / d mā a ru p m \G m g m svara sāhityam p d pa ga ṇ s g r S ṇ s n g r m g r s n ca ra mu la sā re ku gha na ku ca mu la dha ra d P \M g r s vi rā ḷiṁ ka ka ga P g m / d p m g m / p g r s \ Ṇ s pā ṭi ya ni ma di ca la mu go ni sa rō ja s G R g m p va rā ḷī ga mu lu ṇ s g r g g nī su go nu na la B 1542

308 Compositions of various composers Appendix B /M g m P mu lu / G m g m p a mu u lu p P / d p m g M / P m g r / G M / p g r S \ ṇ s g r \ G / m g r g m p /d p d \m M p m p \g G / p m g r N \ G m p m g r S m p d p m g M /uld p m g r / ṇ s ṇg r / G / m g r g m p p ṡ n d p / d m m /d p m g r s s S N D p 4. M m g m /d p \G / p m G / m g r /g r mā ma gu va la sō mu ni kā ka la ka da ri S s Ṇ s g r G m p d ṇ s g g m sā mi ni da la ci ni ra ta mu nu nē vi ra ha P m \ G R s vē da nan vē sa \Ṇ s G r g g riṁ pa nī ta ri ni M P ṡ n d \ yī lā gu na nu B 1543

309 Compositions of various composers Appendix B m g g S m g / d P g d p \ M g r s \ṇ 5. ṇ s p m g r s \ Ṇ s m g r ṇ s g g m s m ne la ta la gu mu lu nī ṭu la na la ri go lu va ga sa dā m G ra sa mu gā ma ma dā ḷu la ga mul ka ra ka ri mro ya ga nu yī p m \G g r s di ni tā da la ci n s g r / S s n ṇ s / G r g g M / d p m g p sā ha sa mu na mī ri gha na rō sa mu na śu kā g r S S n ga nu sā mō da N s g r g g / M g m P / p yī sa ma ya mu na mā a a ru N s ṇ s g r a ṇa a a d p m g r g m p g p m ve e e ma a a a a ru u p m g r S s \S s n d \M /p ḷi pi ika sē na la nu tā da la ci mā na d p \M g r s mu na mā ya go ni p m g r S ṇ ṇ s ṇ s g r s s r s s \n u ū ni i i i bā a a /G m g m p a mu u u g r ṇ s g r s s / g r s /r \S ṇ Ṇ /s n u nē e e tā a a a a a ḷa ga a P / d m m g g m / /m g r s G m a a le m \g G / M p m p ṡ n d P n d P ū ū ū kū u ū ri i i g m P / d p m e e e nu u u /d p M /d p m g r g M g m P ṡ mi i ī tō o o o o o o na ṁ ṁ ṁ B 1544

310 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n n Ṡ n ṡ ṁ ṁ ṁ nē e g r s /r s \n N e e e e e e li Ṡ S p m p S n s M g m g na gu u u u ṇa a a va ṁ ṁ r g r Ṡ ṡ ġ ṙ ṡ /ṙ ṡ n n N s ṁ ṁ ṁ ṁ tu u u ḍai i i i na śrī i s \P ṡ n i va ra d P / d p M g da rā a a a ja p m g / p m g r ṇ a a a a a a a a muktāyi svara sāhityas s g r S s n n s ṇ s sa ra sa jē ri sa ma ra tu la After singing the remaining svara sāhityas, and then taking the em pallavi, the rendition is to be completed. B 1545

311 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.51 tāna varṇam ārabhi rāga ādi tāḷa Tiruvoṭṭiyūr Vīṇa Kuppayyar pallavi r m \ g r s r S \ ṇ ḍ ḍ sa ra si ja mu p. ṃ p. ḍ s s r khi rō o \D /s s r m \ g r nī i ku u /d P m \ g r m R s \ ṇ d / s s /r r. sa ri i yau u u m \ g r r s s d /r u vva R S rē ē anupallavi d d P m p m g r r / m g r r s s p ra mā a tmu u ḍ s ḍ R r \ S ḍai ī na śrī r r m g r /m m p i su r /p m g r r d / d p P s n d d p bra.m hma ṁ ṁ ṇyu u m p m \ g r r m p ḍē e nī d ṡ d /ṡ s i i pai d d /s s R ṡ ṙ m g r R s n d ma ru lu D p m p d /r r ko ni cā d /ṡ s p /d d m p a a a a la r /p m g r ṁ g ṙ R r p d / ṙ p d pa ra va śu ḍai ṡ r m p d ṡ d p yu ṁ m g r \S ḍa gā ḍ s r muktāyi svaram B 1546

312 Compositions of various composers Appendix B d s s r s r /M m g r r /p p m g r r/ d d p P p m g r r s ṇ ḍ g r / m m p \R /m m p s ṇ ḍ r s r m g r / d p r p m g r / m m /P : : m g r [r s S d R s M r P m d d p d Ṡ s n d d R ṙ s ṙ m g ṙ R s /ṙ s s d R r \R m p d S d p P m g r S ḍ s r caraṇam d /ṙ ṡ n \D d d P na ḷi nā kṣi m p d /=.s s d d p ni m p m g r m p d / ne ṁ tō : : svarams ṙ Ṡ D P m \ G R s s r M p d D ṡ S ṙ / Ṁ \ g ṙ ṡ s n d P m \ g r r m p d ṡ nd d p p m g r s r p m g r s s ṇ ḍ / r r s m g r p m p / D : : m p d ṡ n d / r r ṡ m g R r s s d /r r \Ṡ ṡ d d p p m g r m p d B 1547

313 Compositions of various composers Appendix B P m p m g r r s s d r \S s s r r m g r m p d : : m P m g r s R m m p r m m p d d p m p d ṡ s d /ṡ s ṙ r ṁ g ṙ ṁ g ṙ r r s ṡ s ṙ ṡ n d / ṙ Ṡ d p P m g r S ṇ Ḍ s r m p d sarvalaghu svaram 4. d d p p m g r r m g r r s s ṇ ḍ /r r s m g r / p p m g r / m g r s r m p d d p p m g r s r /m m p p d s r / m g r / p m d : d p m p d ṡ n d : d d / ṡ s r ṡ s ṙ ṡ n d / r s s n d / ṙ ṡ ṙ m g r ṡ ṙ m g r ṡ r s n d /ṙ r ṡ s n d s n d d p m p d m p d / s d p m g r s ṇ d r s r m p d 5. R r s n d p p m g r s R m g r / p m /d p ṡ n d : : r m p D d m p d S ṡ d R r d / ṡ s ṙ s / Ṡ r s n d R r s s n d ṡ s / ṙ R ṁ g ṙ ṁ g ṙ R ṡ S ṙ ṡ n d Dp p m p d R ṙ p d Ṡ ṡ r m p D d / R r \S s d d p m g r s m g ṙ R ṡ ṙ s n d B 1548

314 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.52 tāna varṇam bēgaḍa rāga ādi tāḷa Tiruvoṭṭiyūr Vīṇa Kuppayyar pallavi d p M g r S r ṇ ḍ ḍ p p. S. i īṁ ta a ca a la S s n g \ r G a mū u ū jē / p M M g \ r g m sī ī tē e e P m D p / ṡ n d p / ṡ \n d / n / S ē e ma a ni i i i i i tā p d p / s N D p a a ḷu ū u M G r g m p du ū u rā a a anupallavi S /d d p / n n d m p d / n d p \M / p aṁ ṁ ta a a ra ṁ ṁ gu u ū g r s m g m r g ḍa a a ni i i i m p p d p M i i mō o o p D d p m m P p m g r g m p a a na a a va a a cci i i p D p / ṡ \ n d p i ī i te e e /s \n d /n /Ṡ nā a a tō d n s R s / g r g m g /ṁ g R / ṗ m pa ṁ ṁ ta a mē e e lā a a g R r s s d ḋ rā a a śrī i p S n d n s r i vē e ṇu u u r S r n d p / d M p G r g m p d gō o pā a a la a dā sa pa a a p S p d p / N ri ī i i pā s d p m g r g m p a a la a a muktāyi svaram : : B 1549

315 Compositions of various composers Appendix B D p \M / d p m g \ R /G m p d p m G r s ṇ r s s / r ṇ ḍ p. ḍ p. s ṇ R s g r / p M / p g r g m p d p / N p d m g R g m p d P m g r S g r g m p m g m p d p Ṡ n R ṡ / r n d p /ṡ \ n r ṡ g ṙ p m g \ / m M p g r s n N d d p m g R s / ṡ S / r n d d p R g m p caraṇam p p M P m p D pa ga vā ri i ī p d / N d / n d p bō o ō dha a a M m / p g / m r g / p na a a vi nī P \M / d M p g R S \ ṇ Ḍ \P S ṇ R s G \ R G m p m / d p r m g r s ṇ r S / r ṇ ḍ p. ḍ p. S ṇ r s g r g m P : : g r g m P m p / d m s p g r s g \ r g m p m d p ṡ \ n r Ṡ n p m N d p m G r g m m g m p d m d p m g r g m p s p m g r / p m g r s \ ṇ ḍ p. r s ṇ g r B 1550

316 Compositions of various composers Appendix B s m g r p m g /d pn / s \ n d / r s m ġ r ṡ /ṙ n /ṙ ṡ p / d m /d p g m r g m 4. d N s d p / d \M / p g r g m P m p d m d p m g r g m p d / : : N d P m p d P m G r / p m G r S ṇ ḍ p s \ ṇ g r G r s m G m g r p \ M p / d d m g m p m p d p S n D p s \ n ṙ ṡ ġ \ r ġ M p g ṙ ṡ s \ n d d p / s \ n R s n d p P m g r m g \ r g m B 1551

317 Compositions of various composers Appendix B pallavi B.53 tāna varṇam bēgaḍa rāga aṭa tāḷa Tiruvārūr Ayyāsāmi Naṭṭuvanār, a disciple of Muttusvāmi Dīkṣita M S g r g / p iṁ ta a a a P m p d p m / d p m / p m g r S pri ya a a a a mu u u ga s r s s m g r g nu u ṁ nna a a nā ā m p g m p d / n n sa a a a d p m / p g r r s : n s / r ṇ ḍ p / m g r s / p m. a pai i i i i : yi i i ṁ ta a a ba a g r / n n d p m g m r g m p d p d /n n d p a li i i mi i i yē e e la a a ra a d p / r S p m p nā a a sa n n d p m / p g r a a a a r / ṙ ṡ n d p m / p g r s anupallavi mi i i i i i ya ṁ Ṡ r n d p m p d m p m d saṁ ta a ta a mu u p / n n d p \m / d p d G m p m g r r s s /g u ga a a śrī i i i na a a ga a a ra a B 1552

318 Compositions of various composers Appendix B m p m p d p s r mu u u na a a vē e g m p m d p / n n la a a si i i yu u d d p ṡ n ṙ Ṡ Ṡ /ṙ ṡ / ġ r Ġ m g r S u u u ṁ nna sā a a a a mi i ī n ṡ / r n d p m p /d p m /p g r s /r s /p m d śrī i i i tyā a a ga a a rā a a a a a p /ṡ S d p / ṙ a a a a jē ṡ \ n d p / n n d p e e e m n d p m / p g r e śva a a ra a a muktāyi svaram S / r ṇ ḍ p. ḍ p. s ṇ R P m g r g m p d p M g R S g m p d p M / p g r g m p d p m P p /N d p / d p m / p g r g m p m d p s n ṙ ṡ /m g r s ṙ ṡ N s d p \M / p g m p / d p /ṡ S s r N p d p N s d p M /p r g m p d p M p g R s caraṇam B 1553

319 Compositions of various composers Appendix B n n D p m /d ma ru ni i i d P / n d p m / d p d m / n d p m g r i bā dha a a ku u u nē e e e e s /r s s m g r g tā a ḷa a lē e m p g m p d / n n e e e e d p m p g m p d : : n n \ D p m /d e rā a a a : : ma ru ni i i d P n d p m d p d m / n d p m g r i bā dha a a ku u u nē e e s r s s m g r g tā a ḷa a a m p d P lē e e rā svarams s /P / d m g r S \ṇ n ḍ p. S G R / p m m g r s s G / m m p d p M p m g r s r \S S / r ṇ ḍ p. ḍ p. S s ṇ r s m G s r s m G s m g p m d p ṡ n d ṙ S r n d p/ d \s M / p g r G m p d B 1554

320 Compositions of various composers Appendix B N s D p m p d p m /d p m p \M g r s Ṇ s Ḍ p. ḍ p. s ṇ r s m g r s g m p d N D p p r n N D p d \M p / G m p d 4. D p m /D p m G r s R S S r s \ Ṇ ḍ p. ḍ p. s ṇ R S / M g r S p m g r s d p d g m p d p Ṡ s P d p m g ṡ n d p g /m r g s / ṛ ṇ ḍ p. ḍ p. s ṇ r S / M g m s r s d p m P s n ṡ ṙ ṡ / m ġ ṙ ṡ S p quad P ṡ P d m g r s S ṡ n d p d n n d p m /d ma ru ni i i d P / n d p m / d p d m / n d p m g r i bā dha a a ku u u nē e e e e s /r s s m g r g tā a ḷa a lē e m p g m p d / n n e e e e d p m p g m p d : n n D p m /d e rā a a a : ma ru ni i i d P / n d p m d p d m / n d p m g r i bā dha a a ku u u nē e e B 1555

321 Compositions of various composers Appendix B s r s s m g r g tā a ḷa a a d p / d p m g m p / d \m / p g r S r s Ṇ da ka ṣu ṇu da dhi nu ta ka ta jhaṁ s ṙ ṡ n d P d ta kuṁ ta m p d P N s lē e rā ḍ p / s s / m g r s m g m p d p / s s / ṁ ġ r s. ta ri ta ka ku kuṁ da dhri mi ta ta ki ṭa jhaṁ p M p / d p M p g R ta dhī tto s s / ṙ ṡ n d m p d n n D p m /d nnaṁ ta ka ta dhiṁ gi ṇa toṁ ma ru ni i i i d P i bā B 1556

322 Compositions of various composers Appendix B B.54 padam kāṁbhōji rāga aṭa tāḷa Kṣētrayya pallavi d ṡ s n va da ra D D n d p ka pō ō D vē d N d d p D e vā ḍō / N D n d p la va \M / cci p M ni m : : / p m / p m p d / s d p : va ttu rā P / d m m g va g r dda g r na g r vē g M G r s e P P p kū ḍi yuṁ P ṭi P mi p anupallavi m g P a di yo D d Ṡ kka yu ga / g mu N ġ ṙ ġ vē g Ġ ġ /ṁ r rē ja r /g s Ṡ d nma mu yi ṙ ṡ n d / n p / d ppu ḍu d p d /Ṙ a ta ḍe Ṡ N d vva rō d / n p nē /d m g ne va p d rō S m p ō d /n dpm/ pmgr ce li ya /g s s r rō g m p d p ō caraṇam B 1557

323 Compositions of various composers Appendix B N d ṡ s yi cca va la pē bhā ma D d n d d p ni cca lu kā ni dē rō śa gu D nē kā na d N va va la ṭi D ccī ccu gi /N D n d p ni rē na nu cu ti mu p \m pai te vva m p \m nā ru gō m / p M P va vu pā cci lu lu d / ṡ d na jū ḍu d n P ni ci Va / d m g nā vē ccu g m r r g S r g m r ma ti sā ri na nu g rgm G r ṡ ṇ\p. lō ō ō ō ti ī i cu ū u / n d s ō ō ī ī S s d ṡ \ N i ccā ne la leṁ kā miṁ D p n d d p ka ba lu ci ya lu ci nā D vē si dhu d /N ḍi ti la d d d p D ni ṭṭā ni lu pa ka la yu / N D n d p rbu la rā ni ce lu la P / n cē prē jū d p M ta ma ci m g / p m P yi ṁ ti ne ṁ mma ka ra gi P p n D rō ve da di na ṇa ciṁ ta&no d d m p \m vu cu M ōṁ m P / n d p le ko di ṁ ḍi ṁ ṭi ti D d n \p ī ī ī ī ī ī P ī ī ī P B 1558

324 Compositions of various composers Appendix B p m g P i he cce i ka la kaṁ i rā ma D / n Ṡ na ve ḍha cu ka rā mā. g nne nā yī R Ġ la da g Ġ ġ \ m r ci ccu mu la mē ṙ /ġṙ ṡ n d la rā mi ṁcu nu tō ṡṙṡ nd d / n p tru ma vā P lu dhu ni p p d /Ṙ ye ṁ nne mā mō mu Ṡ \ n D nnyō ga ḍa sa mu lu jū ḍa \ M ci gaḍa vale m p \m ti ci ti nā m m p D ni ka nē va cci mo da ṭi /n d p p \ m \g ṭi mā mu cca ṭa po ṁ dē /n n d ṭa lē cā d d p lē lē lu m p B.55 padam saindavi rāga miśra cāpu tāḷa Kṣētrayya pallavi s ṇ S to ṁ da R / g r S ra vi R g g M G ḍa mu r S R R tō nu R R : : m / d P : ce ṁ da p m G R G rā ku M p / n d p nī ku nā m g m P yā p m g R g sā s R s : : m / d P a a : : ce ṁ ta p m G R G rā ku m p / n d p nī ku nā m g m P ya p m g R g nā s R s ā S ā S B 1559

325 Compositions of various composers Appendix B anupallavi s ṇ S i ṁ ta r g g r S ku nē R g g m G tā ḷa r r S R R ga la nā R r : : m / d P : yē rā p m G R G vi ja ya / p M p /n d p rā gha va m g m P jā p m g R g ṇa s R s a a S S caraṇam s ṇ P ja gghu si bbe ṁ ca kka R g g r S gu lku pu ga bbi ni vi R g g M \ G pu gga gu ppa ja ya r r S R nā vi R pō ṭu rā gha va R /r p m /d p ca ce sā ppa mmi mi p m G R / G ri ṁ ci na rē gi na gā na ṁ M / p p / n d p nī du ke ṁ kī lja ḍa nnē li m gmp mmō vē nā p mgr g vi ṭu vā s R s : : r ṇ S i i : : ni ggu u u : : ma bbu a a : : ṭa kku r R g r S nu du ṭi mī ri na lā ḍi R g g m \G la ttu ka ni ddu ra yi ṁ ṭi ki r r S R R dhī vi pā ṭu pō vā R ma r M d P nī ma ra p m G R G i ī ṭu pu tō kku va M p /n d p tō ō tō mgmp da da da p mgr g nu nu nu s R s /m g p m da gga da bba e kka P /d p D ra ni lu ra lā ḍi P d d p M va ku ḍē vu vā ḍi na p p d d n d D pa da rā cā lā vi ru lu B 1560

326 Compositions of various composers Appendix B P m /n d p dā ni dā ni ci kku p m G R G kē nu dē ga da ba ḍḍa vi M P /n d p tā ḷa rā yī nī kaṁ ṭha mgmp p mgr g ga da rā ā cā lā sa ru lu s R s s n S ye ggu ga bbi ni kke R g r S jē si ta na mu mu dā R g m G nā ye nī ni pai r S R R mi rā kē lā ma ru lu R r m /d P yī lā ka li ki nī vu p m G R g gu na nī tō mā dā niṁ M p n d p vē po ṁ ṭā ḍu mī ṭi kē m g m P p mgr g ku du rā vē ḷa ta ra lu s R s a a u a a u END OF APPENDIX B END B 1561

CATAVASII LA NAȘTEREA DOMNULUI DUMNEZEU ȘI MÂNTUITORULUI NOSTRU, IISUS HRISTOS. CÂNTAREA I-A. Ήχος Πα. to os se e e na aș te e e slă ă ă vi i i i i

CATAVASII LA NAȘTEREA DOMNULUI DUMNEZEU ȘI MÂNTUITORULUI NOSTRU, IISUS HRISTOS. CÂNTAREA I-A. Ήχος Πα. to os se e e na aș te e e slă ă ă vi i i i i CATAVASII LA NAȘTEREA DOMNULUI DUMNEZEU ȘI MÂNTUITORULUI NOSTRU, IISUS HRISTOS. CÂNTAREA I-A Ήχος α H ris to os s n ș t slă ă ă vi i i i i ți'l Hris to o os di in c ru u uri, în tâm pi i n ți i'l Hris

More information

Entani Ne. Ragam: Mukhari (22th Mela janyam) ARO: S R2 M1 P N2 D2 S AVA: S N2 D1 P M1 G2 R2 S Talam: Rupakam Composer: Tyagaraja Version: Ram Kaushik

Entani Ne. Ragam: Mukhari (22th Mela janyam) ARO: S R2 M1 P N2 D2 S AVA: S N2 D1 P M1 G2 R2 S Talam: Rupakam Composer: Tyagaraja Version: Ram Kaushik Entani Ne Ragam: Mukhari (22th Mela janyam) ARO: S R2 M1 P N2 D2 S AVA: S N2 D1 P M1 G2 R2 S Talam: Rupakam Composer: Tyagaraja Version: Ram Kaushik Pallavi: Entani Ne Varnintunu Shabari Bhaagyam Anupallavi

More information

A L A BA M A L A W R E V IE W

A L A BA M A L A W R E V IE W A L A BA M A L A W R E V IE W Volume 52 Fall 2000 Number 1 B E F O R E D I S A B I L I T Y C I V I L R I G HT S : C I V I L W A R P E N S I O N S A N D TH E P O L I T I C S O F D I S A B I L I T Y I N

More information

Vaachaamagocharame Manasa

Vaachaamagocharame Manasa Vaachaamagocharame Manasa Ragam: Kaikavaasi (60 th Melakartha (Neethmathi) janyam) ARO: S R2 G2 M2 P D3 N3 S AVA: S N3 P M2 G2 R2 S Talam: Deshadi Composer: Tyagaraja Version: MS Subbalakshmi Lyrics Courtesy:

More information

P a g e 5 1 of R e p o r t P B 4 / 0 9

P a g e 5 1 of R e p o r t P B 4 / 0 9 P a g e 5 1 of R e p o r t P B 4 / 0 9 J A R T a l s o c o n c l u d e d t h a t a l t h o u g h t h e i n t e n t o f N e l s o n s r e h a b i l i t a t i o n p l a n i s t o e n h a n c e c o n n e

More information

Mara Vairi Ramani. In some versions, "sadaa vadana haase shubha phalade" is replaced with "tyaagaraaja vinutha."

Mara Vairi Ramani. In some versions, sadaa vadana haase shubha phalade is replaced with tyaagaraaja vinutha. Mara Vairi Ramani Ragam: Nasikabhooshani (70 th Melakartha Raga) ARO: S R3 G3 M2 P D2 N2 S AVA: S N2 D2 P M2 G3 R3 S Talam: Rupakam (or Thrisra Jati Adi) Composer: Version: Ram

More information

Ash Wednesday. First Introit thing. * Dómi- nos. di- di- nos, tú- ré- spi- Ps. ne. Dó- mi- Sál- vum. intra-vé-runt. Gló- ri-

Ash Wednesday. First Introit thing. * Dómi- nos. di- di- nos, tú- ré- spi- Ps. ne. Dó- mi- Sál- vum. intra-vé-runt. Gló- ri- sh Wdsdy 7 gn mult- tú- st Frst Intrt thng X-áud m. ns ní- m-sr-cór- Ps. -qu Ptr - m- Sál- vum m * usqu 1 d fc á-rum sp- m-sr-t- ó- num Gló- r- Fí- l- Sp-rí- : quó-n- m ntr-vé-runt á- n-mm c * m- quó-n-

More information

T h e C S E T I P r o j e c t

T h e C S E T I P r o j e c t T h e P r o j e c t T H E P R O J E C T T A B L E O F C O N T E N T S A r t i c l e P a g e C o m p r e h e n s i v e A s s es s m e n t o f t h e U F O / E T I P h e n o m e n o n M a y 1 9 9 1 1 E T

More information

ETIKA V PROFESII PSYCHOLÓGA

ETIKA V PROFESII PSYCHOLÓGA P r a ž s k á v y s o k á š k o l a p s y c h o s o c i á l n í c h s t u d i í ETIKA V PROFESII PSYCHOLÓGA N a t á l i a S l o b o d n í k o v á v e d ú c i p r á c e : P h D r. M a r t i n S t r o u

More information

Request to Allocate the Sharada Script in the Unicode Roadmap

Request to Allocate the Sharada Script in the Unicode Roadmap JTC1/SC2/WG2 N3245 Request to Allocate the Sharada Script in the Unicode Roadmap University of Washington Seattle, Washington, USA apandey@u.washington.edu November 21, 2005 1 Introduction This is a request

More information

Metallurgical Chemistry. An Audio Course for Students

Metallurgical Chemistry. An Audio Course for Students Laval University From the SelectedWorks of Fathi Habashi February, 1987 Metallurgical Chemistry. An Audio Course for Students Fathi Habashi Available at: https://works.bepress.com/fathi_habashi/27/ METALLURGICAL

More information

Applying Phonetic Matching Algorithm to Tongue Twister Retrieval in Japanese

Applying Phonetic Matching Algorithm to Tongue Twister Retrieval in Japanese 1 1 n-gram 2 Applying Phonetic Matching Algorithm to Tongue Twister Retrieval in Japanese Michiko Yasukawa 1 and Hidetoshi Yokoo 1 In this paper, we propose a Japanese phonetic matching algorithm for tongue

More information

Use precise language and domain-specific vocabulary to inform about or explain the topic. CCSS.ELA-LITERACY.WHST D

Use precise language and domain-specific vocabulary to inform about or explain the topic. CCSS.ELA-LITERACY.WHST D Lesson eight What are characteristics of chemical reactions? Science Constructing Explanations, Engaging in Argument and Obtaining, Evaluating, and Communicating Information ENGLISH LANGUAGE ARTS Reading

More information

The Periodic Table. Periodic Properties. Can you explain this graph? Valence Electrons. Valence Electrons. Paramagnetism

The Periodic Table. Periodic Properties. Can you explain this graph? Valence Electrons. Valence Electrons. Paramagnetism Periodic Properties Atomic & Ionic Radius Energy Electron Affinity We want to understand the variations in these properties in terms of electron configurations. The Periodic Table Elements in a column

More information

CHEM 10113, Quiz 5 October 26, 2011

CHEM 10113, Quiz 5 October 26, 2011 CHEM 10113, Quiz 5 October 26, 2011 Name (please print) All equations must be balanced and show phases for full credit. Significant figures count, show charges as appropriate, and please box your answers!

More information

[ ]:543.4(075.8) 35.20: ,..,..,.., : /... ;. 2-. ISBN , - [ ]:543.4(075.8) 35.20:34.

[ ]:543.4(075.8) 35.20: ,..,..,.., : /... ;. 2-. ISBN , - [ ]:543.4(075.8) 35.20:34. .. - 2-2009 [661.87.+661.88]:543.4(075.8) 35.20:34.2373-60..,..,..,..,.. -60 : /... ;. 2-. : -, 2008. 134. ISBN 5-98298-299-7 -., -,,. - «,, -, -», - 550800,, 240600 «-», -. [661.87.+661.88]:543.4(075.8)

More information

Pradarśini (1905) VOLUME II. CAKRAS 5 and 6

Pradarśini (1905) VOLUME II. CAKRAS 5 and 6 Saṅgīta Saṁpradāya Pradarśini Brahmaśrī SUBBARĀMA DĪKṢITA (1905) VOLUME II CAKRAS 5 and 6 ENGLISH EDITION JANUARY 2008 SAṄGĪTA SAṀPRADĀYA PRADARŚINI SUBBARĀMA DĪKṢITA ENGLISH (WEB) VERSION Volume II: MĒḶAS

More information

Solutions and Ions. Pure Substances

Solutions and Ions. Pure Substances Class #4 Solutions and Ions CHEM 107 L.S. Brown Texas A&M University Pure Substances Pure substance: described completely by a single chemical formula Fixed composition 1 Mixtures Combination of 2 or more

More information

(please print) (1) (18) H IIA IIIA IVA VA VIA VIIA He (2) (13) (14) (15) (16) (17)

(please print) (1) (18) H IIA IIIA IVA VA VIA VIIA He (2) (13) (14) (15) (16) (17) CHEM 10113, Quiz 3 September 28, 2011 Name (please print) All equations must be balanced and show phases for full credit. Significant figures count, show charges as appropriate, and please box your answers!

More information

CHEM 130 Exp. 8: Molecular Models

CHEM 130 Exp. 8: Molecular Models CHEM 130 Exp. 8: Molecular Models In this lab, we will learn and practice predicting molecular structures from molecular formulas. The Periodic Table of the Elements IA 1 H IIA IIIA IVA VA VIA VIIA 3 5

More information

Last 4 Digits of USC ID:

Last 4 Digits of USC ID: Chemistry 05 B Practice Exam Dr. Jessica Parr First Letter of last Name PLEASE PRINT YOUR NAME IN BLOCK LETTERS Name: Last 4 Digits of USC ID: Lab TA s Name: Question Points Score Grader 8 2 4 3 9 4 0

More information

CLASS TEST GRADE 11. PHYSICAL SCIENCES: CHEMISTRY Test 4: Matter and materials 1

CLASS TEST GRADE 11. PHYSICAL SCIENCES: CHEMISTRY Test 4: Matter and materials 1 CLASS TEST GRADE PHYSICAL SCIENCES: CHEMISTRY Test 4: Matter and materials MARKS: 45 TIME: hour INSTRUCTIONS AND INFORMATION. Answer ALL the questions. 2. You may use non-programmable calculators. 3. You

More information

The exam must be written in ink. No calculators of any sort allowed. You have 2 hours to complete the exam. Periodic table 7 0

The exam must be written in ink. No calculators of any sort allowed. You have 2 hours to complete the exam. Periodic table 7 0 Email: The exam must be written in ink. No calculators of any sort allowed. You have 2 hours to complete the exam. CEM 610B Exam 3 Spring 2002 Instructor: Dr. Brian Pagenkopf Page Points 2 6 3 7 4 9 5

More information

The Periodic Table of the Elements

The Periodic Table of the Elements The Periodic Table of the Elements All matter is composed of elements. All of the elements are composed of atoms. An atom is the smallest part of an element which still retains the properties of that element.

More information

Ch. 9 NOTES ~ Chemical Bonding NOTE: Vocabulary terms are in boldface and underlined. Supporting details are in italics.

Ch. 9 NOTES ~ Chemical Bonding NOTE: Vocabulary terms are in boldface and underlined. Supporting details are in italics. Ch. 9 NOTES ~ Chemical Bonding NOTE: Vocabulary terms are in boldface and underlined. Supporting details are in italics. I. Review: Comparison of ionic and molecular compounds Molecular compounds Ionic

More information

Circle the letters only. NO ANSWERS in the Columns!

Circle the letters only. NO ANSWERS in the Columns! Chemistry 1304.001 Name (please print) Exam 5 (100 points) April 18, 2018 On my honor, I have neither given nor received unauthorized aid on this exam. Signed Date Circle the letters only. NO ANSWERS in

More information

Element Cube Project (x2)

Element Cube Project (x2) Element Cube Project (x2) Background: As a class, we will construct a three dimensional periodic table by each student selecting two elements in which you will need to create an element cube. Helpful Links

More information

Radiometric Dating (tap anywhere)

Radiometric Dating (tap anywhere) Radiometric Dating (tap anywhere) Protons Neutrons Electrons Elements on the periodic table are STABLE Elements can have radioactive versions of itself called ISOTOPES!! Page 1 in your ESRT has your list!

More information

176 5 t h Fl oo r. 337 P o ly me r Ma te ri al s

176 5 t h Fl oo r. 337 P o ly me r Ma te ri al s A g la di ou s F. L. 462 E l ec tr on ic D ev el op me nt A i ng er A.W.S. 371 C. A. M. A l ex an de r 236 A d mi ni st ra ti on R. H. (M rs ) A n dr ew s P. V. 326 O p ti ca l Tr an sm is si on A p ps

More information

Chemistry 2 Exam Roane State Academic Festival. Name (print neatly) School

Chemistry 2 Exam Roane State Academic Festival. Name (print neatly) School Name (print neatly) School There are fifteen question on this exam. Each question is weighted equally. n the answer sheet, write your name in the space provided and your answers in the blanks provided.

More information

KHI X L T SÔNG H NG VÀO SÔNG ÁY

KHI X L T SÔNG H NG VÀO SÔNG ÁY XÂY D NG B N NG P L T KHU V C H DU TÓM T T T KHI X L T SÔNG H NG VÀO SÔNG ÁY Lê Vi t S n 1 Bài báo này trình bày k t qu nghiên c u, ánh giá r i ro ng p l vùng h du sông áy khi x l t sông H ng vào sông

More information

Secondary Support Pack. be introduced to some of the different elements within the periodic table;

Secondary Support Pack. be introduced to some of the different elements within the periodic table; Secondary Support Pack INTRODUCTION The periodic table of the elements is central to chemistry as we know it today and the study of it is a key part of every student s chemical education. By playing the

More information

Ragam: Ragamalika (Ranjani, Sriranjani, Megharanjani, Janaranjani) Talam: Adi Composer: Tanjavur Shankara Aiyer Notation Courtesy: Vidya Subramanian

Ragam: Ragamalika (Ranjani, Sriranjani, Megharanjani, Janaranjani) Talam: Adi Composer: Tanjavur Shankara Aiyer Notation Courtesy: Vidya Subramanian Ranjani Mrudu PankajaLochani Ragam: Ragamalika (Ranjani, Sriranjani, Megharanjani, Janaranjani) Talam: Adi Composer: Tanjavur Shankara Aiyer Notation Courtesy: Vidya Subramanian Ranjani Arohanam: S R2

More information

Atoms and the Periodic Table

Atoms and the Periodic Table Atoms and the Periodic Table Parts of the Atom Proton Found in the nucleus Number of protons defines the element Charge +1, mass 1 Parts of the Atom Neutron Found in the nucleus Stabilizes the nucleus

More information

CHM 101 PRACTICE TEST 1 Page 1 of 4

CHM 101 PRACTICE TEST 1 Page 1 of 4 CHM 101 PRACTICE TEST 1 Page 1 of 4 Please show calculations (stuffed equations) on all mathematical problems!! On the actual test, "naked answers, with no work shown, will receive no credit even if correct.

More information

R a. Aeolian Church. A O g C. Air, Storm, Wind. P a h. Affinity: Clan Law. r q V a b a. R 5 Z t 6. c g M b. Atroxic Church. d / X.

R a. Aeolian Church. A O g C. Air, Storm, Wind. P a h. Affinity: Clan Law. r q V a b a. R 5 Z t 6. c g M b. Atroxic Church. d / X. A M W A A A A R A O C A () A 6 A A G A A A A A A-C Au A A P 0 V A T < Au J Az01 Az02 A Au A A A A R 5 Z 6 M B G B B B P T Bu B B B B S B / X B A Cu A, S, W A: S Hu Ru A: C L A, S, F, S A, u F C, R C F

More information

Circle the letters only. NO ANSWERS in the Columns! (3 points each)

Circle the letters only. NO ANSWERS in the Columns! (3 points each) Chemistry 1304.001 Name (please print) Exam 4 (100 points) April 12, 2017 On my honor, I have neither given nor received unauthorized aid on this exam. Signed Date Circle the letters only. NO ANSWERS in

More information

Chair Susan Pilkington called the meeting to order.

Chair Susan Pilkington called the meeting to order. PGE PRK D RECREO DVOR COMMEE REGUR MEEG MUE MOD, JU, Ru M h P P d R d Cmm hd : m Ju,, h Cu Chmb C H P, z Ch u P dd, Mmb B C, Gm Cu D W Bd mmb b: m D, d Md z ud mmb : C M, J C P Cmmu Dm D, Km Jh Pub W M,

More information

2 (27) 3 (26) 4 (21) 5 (18) 6 (8) Total (200) Periodic Table

2 (27) 3 (26) 4 (21) 5 (18) 6 (8) Total (200) Periodic Table Chem 3311 Sammakia Fall 2009 Midterm 1 Student ID page points: 2 (27) 3 (26) 4 (21) 5 (18) 6 (8) Total (200) Periodic Table e Li Be B C N O F Ne Na Mg Al Si P S Cl Ar K Ca Sc Ti V Cr Mn Fe Co Ni Cu Zn

More information

HANDOUT SET GENERAL CHEMISTRY II

HANDOUT SET GENERAL CHEMISTRY II HANDOUT SET GENERAL CHEMISTRY II Periodic Table of the Elements 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 IA VIIIA 1 2 H He 1.00794 IIA IIIA IVA VA VIA VIIA 4.00262 3 Li 6.941 11 Na 22.9898

More information

610B Final Exam Cover Page

610B Final Exam Cover Page 1 st Letter of Last Name NAME: 610B Final Exam Cover Page No notes or calculators of any sort allowed. You have 3 hours to complete the exam. CHEM 610B, 50995 Final Exam Fall 2003 Instructor: Dr. Brian

More information

02/05/09 Last 4 Digits of USC ID: Dr. Jessica Parr

02/05/09 Last 4 Digits of USC ID: Dr. Jessica Parr Chemistry 05 B First Letter of PLEASE PRINT YOUR NAME IN BLOCK LETTERS Exam last Name Name: 02/05/09 Last 4 Digits of USC ID: Dr. Jessica Parr Lab TA s Name: Question Points Score Grader 2 2 9 3 9 4 2

More information

(C) Pavel Sedach and Prep101 1

(C) Pavel Sedach and Prep101 1 (C) Pavel Sedach and Prep101 1 (C) Pavel Sedach and Prep101 1 (C) Pavel Sedach and Prep101 2 (C) Pavel Sedach and Prep101 2 (C) Pavel Sedach and Prep101 3 (C) Pavel Sedach and Prep101 3 (C) Pavel Sedach

More information

CHEM 107 (Spring-2005) Exam 3 (100 pts)

CHEM 107 (Spring-2005) Exam 3 (100 pts) CHEM 107 (Spring-2005) Exam 3 (100 pts) Name: ------------------------------------------------------------------------, Clid # ------------------------------ LAST NAME, First (Circle the alphabet segment

More information

HANDOUT SET GENERAL CHEMISTRY I

HANDOUT SET GENERAL CHEMISTRY I HANDOUT SET GENERAL CHEMISTRY I Periodic Table of the Elements 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 IA VIIIA 1 2 H He 1.00794 IIA IIIA IVA VA VIA VIIA 4.00262 3 Li 6.941 11 Na 22.9898

More information

CMSC 313 Lecture 17 Postulates & Theorems of Boolean Algebra Semiconductors CMOS Logic Gates

CMSC 313 Lecture 17 Postulates & Theorems of Boolean Algebra Semiconductors CMOS Logic Gates CMSC 313 Lecture 17 Postulates & Theorems of Boolean Algebra Semiconductors CMOS Logic Gates UMBC, CMSC313, Richard Chang Last Time Overview of second half of this course Logic gates &

More information

Nucleus. Electron Cloud

Nucleus. Electron Cloud Atomic Structure I. Picture of an Atom Nucleus Electron Cloud II. Subatomic particles Particle Symbol Charge Relative Mass (amu) protons p + +1 1.0073 neutrons n 0 1.0087 electrons e - -1 0.00054858 Compare

More information

CHEM 251 (Fall-2003) Final Exam (100 pts)

CHEM 251 (Fall-2003) Final Exam (100 pts) CEM 251 (Fall-2003) Final Exam (100 pts) Name: -------------------------------------------------------------------------------, SSN -------------------------------- LAST NAME, First (Circle the alphabet

More information

CHEM Come to the PASS workshop with your mock exam complete. During the workshop you can work with other students to review your work.

CHEM Come to the PASS workshop with your mock exam complete. During the workshop you can work with other students to review your work. It is most beneficial to you to write this mock midterm UNDER EXAM CONDITIONS. This means: Complete the midterm in 1.5 hours. Work on your own. Keep your notes and textbook closed. Attempt every question.

More information

Luâ t Chăm So c Sư c Kho e Mơ i va Medicare

Luâ t Chăm So c Sư c Kho e Mơ i va Medicare Luâ t Chăm So c Sư c Kho e Mơ i va Medicare Nê u quy vi cu ng như nhiê u ngươ i kha c co Medicare, quy vi co thê thă c mă c luâ t chăm so c sư c kho e mơ i co y nghi a gi vơ i quy vi. Mô t sô ca c thay

More information

h : sh +i F J a n W i m +i F D eh, 1 ; 5 i A cl m i n i sh» si N «q a : 1? ek ser P t r \. e a & im a n alaa p ( M Scanned by CamScanner

h : sh +i F J a n W i m +i F D eh, 1 ; 5 i A cl m i n i sh» si N «q a : 1? ek ser P t r \. e a & im a n alaa p ( M Scanned by CamScanner m m i s t r * j i ega>x I Bi 5 n ì r s w «s m I L nk r n A F o n n l 5 o 5 i n l D eh 1 ; 5 i A cl m i n i sh» si N «q a : 1? { D v i H R o s c q \ l o o m ( t 9 8 6) im a n alaa p ( M n h k Em l A ma

More information

! -., THIS PAGE DECLASSIFIED IAW EQ t Fr ra _ ce, _., I B T 1CC33ti3HI QI L '14 D? 0. l d! .; ' D. o.. r l y. - - PR Pi B nt 8, HZ5 0 QL

! -., THIS PAGE DECLASSIFIED IAW EQ t Fr ra _ ce, _., I B T 1CC33ti3HI QI L '14 D? 0. l d! .; ' D. o.. r l y. - - PR Pi B nt 8, HZ5 0 QL H PAGE DECAFED AW E0 2958 UAF HORCA UD & D m \ Z c PREMNAR D FGHER BOMBER ARC o v N C o m p R C DECEMBER 956 PREPARED B HE UAF HORCA DVO N HRO UGH HE COOPERAON O F HE HORCA DVON HEADQUARER UAREUR DEPARMEN

More information

INSTRUCTIONS: 7. Relax and do well.

INSTRUCTIONS: 7. Relax and do well. EM 1314 Name Exam III TA Name John III. Gelder November 16, 1992 Lab Section INSTRUTIONS: 1. This examination consists of a total of 7 different pages. The last page includes a periodic table and some

More information

9/20/2017. Elements are Pure Substances that cannot be broken down into simpler substances by chemical change (contain Only One Type of Atom)

9/20/2017. Elements are Pure Substances that cannot be broken down into simpler substances by chemical change (contain Only One Type of Atom) CAPTER 6: TE PERIODIC TABLE Elements are Pure Substances that cannot be broken down into simpler substances by chemical change (contain Only One Type of Atom) The Periodic Table (Mendeleev) In 1872, Dmitri

More information

8. Relax and do well.

8. Relax and do well. CHEM 1314.03 Exam I John I. Gelder September 25, 1997 Name TA's Name Lab Section Please sign your name below to give permission to post, by the last 4 digits of your student I.D. number, your course scores

More information

PROOF/ÉPREUVE ISO INTERNATIONAL STANDARD. Space environment (natural and artificial) Galactic cosmic ray model

PROOF/ÉPREUVE ISO INTERNATIONAL STANDARD. Space environment (natural and artificial) Galactic cosmic ray model INTERNATIONAL STANDARD ISO 15390 First edition 2004-##-## Space environment (natural and artificial) Galactic cosmic ray model Environnement spatial (naturel et artificiel) Modèle de rayonnement cosmique

More information

8. Relax and do well.

8. Relax and do well. CHEM 1314 3;30 pm Theory Exam III John III. Gelder November 13, 2002 Name TA's Name Lab Section INSTRUCTIONS: 1. This examination consists of a total of 8 different pages. The last page include a periodic

More information

Faculty of Natural and Agricultural Sciences Chemistry Department. Semester Test 1 MEMO. Analytical Chemistry CMY 283

Faculty of Natural and Agricultural Sciences Chemistry Department. Semester Test 1 MEMO. Analytical Chemistry CMY 283 Faculty of Natural and Agricultural Sciences Chemistry Department Semester Test 1 MEMO Analytical Chemistry CMY 283 Date: 5 September 2016 Lecturers : Prof P Forbes, Dr Laurens, Mr SA Nsibande Time: 90

More information

Chemistry 1 First Lecture Exam Fall Abbasi Khajo Levine Mathias Mathias/Ortiz Metlitsky Rahi Sanchez-Delgado Vasserman

Chemistry 1 First Lecture Exam Fall Abbasi Khajo Levine Mathias Mathias/Ortiz Metlitsky Rahi Sanchez-Delgado Vasserman Chemistry 1 First Lecture Exam Fall 2011 Page 1 of 9 NAME Circle the name of your recitation/lab instructor(s) Abbasi Khajo Levine Mathias Mathias/Ortiz Metlitsky Rahi Sanchez-Delgado Vasserman Before

More information

Guide to the Extended Step-Pyramid Periodic Table

Guide to the Extended Step-Pyramid Periodic Table Guide to the Extended Step-Pyramid Periodic Table William B. Jensen Department of Chemistry University of Cincinnati Cincinnati, OH 452201-0172 The extended step-pyramid table recognizes that elements

More information

CHEM 10123/10125, Exam 2

CHEM 10123/10125, Exam 2 CHEM 10123/10125, Exam 2 March 7, 2012 (50 minutes) Name (please print) Please box your answers, and remember that significant figures, phases (for chemical equations), and units do count! 1. (13 points)

More information

BROOKLYN COLLEGE Department of Chemistry. Chemistry 1 Second Lecture Exam Nov. 27, Name Page 1 of 5

BROOKLYN COLLEGE Department of Chemistry. Chemistry 1 Second Lecture Exam Nov. 27, Name Page 1 of 5 BROOKLYN COLLEGE Department of Chemistry Chemistry 1 Second Lecture Exam Nov. 27, 2002 Name Page 1 of 5 Circle the name of your lab instructor Kobrak, Zhou, Girotto, Hussey, Du Before you begin the exam,

More information

Microsoft Excel Directions

Microsoft Excel Directions Microsoft Excel Directions 1. Working in groups of two, log onto a computer. 2. Create a folder on the desktop a. Right click anywhere on the desktop new folder Name the folder Chemistry 3. Open MS Excel

More information

Made the FIRST periodic table

Made the FIRST periodic table Made the FIRST periodic table 1869 Mendeleev organized the periodic table based on the similar properties and relativities of certain elements Later, Henri Moseley organized the elements by increasing

More information

8. Relax and do well.

8. Relax and do well. CHEM 1515 Exam II John II. Gelder October 14, 1993 Name TA's Name Lab Section INSTRUCTIONS: 1. This examination consists of a total of 8 different pages. The last two pages include a periodic table, a

More information

8. Relax and do well.

8. Relax and do well. CHEM 1225 Exam I John I. Gelder February 4, 1999 Name KEY TA's Name Lab Section Please sign your name below to give permission to post your course scores on homework, laboratories and exams. If you do

More information

PERIODIC TABLE OF THE ELEMENTS

PERIODIC TABLE OF THE ELEMENTS Useful Constants and equations: K = o C + 273 Avogadro's number = 6.022 x 10 23 d = density = mass/volume R H = 2.178 x 10-18 J c = E = h = hc/ h = 6.626 x 10-34 J s c = 2.998 x 10 8 m/s E n = -R H Z 2

More information

Atomic Emission Spectra. and. Flame Tests. Burlingame High School Chemistry

Atomic Emission Spectra. and. Flame Tests. Burlingame High School Chemistry Atomic Structure Atomic Emission Spectra and Flame Tests Flame Tests Sodium potassium lithium When electrons are excited they bump up to a higher energy level. As they bounce back down they release energy

More information

M10/4/CHEMI/SPM/ENG/TZ2/XX+ CHEMISTRY. Wednesday 12 May 2010 (afternoon) 45 minutes INSTRUCTIONS TO CANDIDATES

M10/4/CHEMI/SPM/ENG/TZ2/XX+ CHEMISTRY. Wednesday 12 May 2010 (afternoon) 45 minutes INSTRUCTIONS TO CANDIDATES M10/4/CHEMI/SPM/ENG/TZ/XX+ 106116 CHEMISTRY standard level Paper 1 Wednesday 1 May 010 (afternoon) 45 minutes INSTRUCTIONS TO CANDIDATES Do not open this examination paper until instructed to do so. Answer

More information

Lab Day and Time: Instructions. 1. Do not open the exam until you are told to start.

Lab Day and Time: Instructions. 1. Do not open the exam until you are told to start. Name: Lab Day and Time: Instructions 1. Do not open the exam until you are told to start. 2. This exam is closed note and closed book. You are not allowed to use any outside material while taking this

More information

Chapter 12 The Atom & Periodic Table- part 2

Chapter 12 The Atom & Periodic Table- part 2 Chapter 12 The Atom & Periodic Table- part 2 Electrons found outside the nucleus; negatively charged Protons found in the nucleus; positive charge equal in magnitude to the electron s negative charge Neutrons

More information

INSTRUCTIONS: Exam III. November 10, 1999 Lab Section

INSTRUCTIONS: Exam III. November 10, 1999 Lab Section CHEM 1215 Exam III John III. Gelder November 10, 1999 Name TA's Name Lab Section INSTRUCTIONS: 1. This examination consists of a total of 7 different pages. The last page includes a periodic table and

More information

INSTRUCTIONS: CHEM Exam I. September 13, 1994 Lab Section

INSTRUCTIONS: CHEM Exam I. September 13, 1994 Lab Section CHEM 1314.05 Exam I John I. Gelder September 13, 1994 Name TA's Name Lab Section Please sign your name below to give permission to post, by the last 4 digits of your student I.D. number, your course scores

More information

I cu n y li in Wal wi m hu n Mik an t o da t Bri an Si n. We al ha a c o k do na Di g.

I cu n y li in Wal wi m hu n Mik an t o da t Bri an Si n. We al ha a c o k do na Di g. Aug 25, 2018 De r Fam e, Wel to 7t - ra at Dun Lak! My na is Mr. Van Wag an I te 7t g a la ge ar, an so s u s. Whi t i wi be m 13t ye of te n, it is m 1s ye D S an Cal i Com t Sc o s. I am so ha y an ex

More information

Faculty of Natural and Agricultural Sciences Chemistry Department. Semester Test 1. Analytical Chemistry CMY 283. Time: 120 min Marks: 100 Pages: 6

Faculty of Natural and Agricultural Sciences Chemistry Department. Semester Test 1. Analytical Chemistry CMY 283. Time: 120 min Marks: 100 Pages: 6 Faculty of Natural and Agricultural Sciences Chemistry Department Semester Test 1 Analytical Chemistry CMY 283 Date: 5 September 2016 Lecturers : Prof P Forbes, Dr Laurens, Mr SA Nsibande Time: 120 min

More information

Chem 6 Sample exam 2 (150 points total) NAME:

Chem 6 Sample exam 2 (150 points total) NAME: hem 6 Sample exam 2 (150 points total) @ This is a closed book exam to which the onor Principle applies. @ The last page contains equations and physical constants; you can detach it for easy reference.

More information

:,,.. ;,..,.,. 90 :.. :, , «-»,, -. : -,,, -, -., ,, -, -. - «-»:,,, ,.,.

:,,.. ;,..,.,. 90 :.. :, , «-»,, -. : -,,, -, -., ,, -, -. - «-»:,,, ,.,. .,.,. 2015 1 614.8 68.9 90 :,,.. ;,. 90.,.,. :.. :, 2015. 164. - - 280700, «-»,, -. : -,,, -, -.,. -. -. -,, -, -. - «-»:,,, -. 614.8 68.9.,.,., 2015, 2015 2 ... 5... 7 1.... 7 1.1.... 7 1.2.... 9 1.3....

More information

Department of computer engineering

Department of computer engineering Department of computer engineering Report On Seminar Use of Open Source Software in Academic & How to setup Open Source Technology Club (OSTC) in your Institute Date & Venue: 23 January 2016. OM Engineering

More information

8. Relax and do well.

8. Relax and do well. CHEM 1014 Exam I John I. Gelder September 16, 1999 Name TA's Name Lab Section Please sign your name below to give permission to post your course scores on homework, laboratories and exams. If you do not

More information

CHEM 108 (Spring-2008) Exam. 3 (105 pts)

CHEM 108 (Spring-2008) Exam. 3 (105 pts) CHEM 08 (Spring-008) Exam. (05 pts) Name: --------------------------------------------------------------------------, CLID # -------------------------------- LAST NAME, First (Circle the alphabet segment

More information

Chemistry 431 Practice Final Exam Fall Hours

Chemistry 431 Practice Final Exam Fall Hours Chemistry 431 Practice Final Exam Fall 2018 3 Hours R =8.3144 J mol 1 K 1 R=.0821 L atm mol 1 K 1 R=.08314 L bar mol 1 K 1 k=1.381 10 23 J molecule 1 K 1 h=6.626 10 34 Js N A = 6.022 10 23 molecules mol

More information

7. Relax and do well.

7. Relax and do well. CHEM 1215 Exam II John II. Gelder October 13, 1999 Name TA's Name Lab Section INSTRUCTIONS: 1. This examination consists of a total of 5 different pages. The last page includes a periodic table and a solubility

More information

Chemistry Higher level Paper 1

Chemistry Higher level Paper 1 N15/4/EMI/PM/ENG/TZ0/XX hemistry igher level Paper 1 Friday 13 November 2015 (afternoon) 1 hour Instructions to candidates Do not open this examination paper until instructed to do so. Answer all the questions.

More information

30 Zn(s) 45 Rh. Pd(s) Ag(s) Cd(s) In(s) Sn(s) white. 77 Ir. Pt(s) Au. Hg(l) Tl. 109 Mt. 111 Uuu. 112 Uub. 110 Uun. 65 Tb. 62 Sm. 64 Gd. 63 Eu.

30 Zn(s) 45 Rh. Pd(s) Ag(s) Cd(s) In(s) Sn(s) white. 77 Ir. Pt(s) Au. Hg(l) Tl. 109 Mt. 111 Uuu. 112 Uub. 110 Uun. 65 Tb. 62 Sm. 64 Gd. 63 Eu. Enthalpy changes: experimentally it is much easier to measure heat flow at const pressure - this is enthalpy q p = )H : also nearly all chemical reactions are done at constant pressure. Enthalpy (heat)

More information

1 Genesis 1:1. Chapter 10 Matter. Lesson. Genesis 1:1 In the beginning God created the heavens and the earth. (NKJV)

1 Genesis 1:1. Chapter 10 Matter. Lesson. Genesis 1:1 In the beginning God created the heavens and the earth. (NKJV) 1 Genesis 1:1 Genesis 1:1 In the beginning God created the heavens and the earth. (NKJV) 1 Vocabulary Saturated having all the solute that can be dissolved at that temperature Neutron a particle with no

More information

CHEM 172 EXAMINATION 1. January 15, 2009

CHEM 172 EXAMINATION 1. January 15, 2009 CHEM 17 EXAMINATION 1 January 15, 009 Dr. Kimberly M. Broekemeier NAME: Circle lecture time: 9:00 11:00 Constants: c = 3.00 X 10 8 m/s h = 6.63 X 10-34 J x s J = kg x m /s Rydberg Constant = 1.096776 x

More information

Chem Exam 1. September 26, Dr. Susan E. Bates. Name 9:00 OR 10:00

Chem Exam 1. September 26, Dr. Susan E. Bates. Name 9:00 OR 10:00 Chem 1711 Exam 1 September 26, 2013 Dr. Susan E. Bates Name 9:00 OR 10:00 N A = 6.022 x 10 23 mol 1 I A II A III B IV B V B VI B VII B VIII I B II B III A IV A V A VI A VII A inert gases 1 H 1.008 3 Li

More information

High Accuracy EUV Reflectometry and Scattering at the Advanced Light Source

High Accuracy EUV Reflectometry and Scattering at the Advanced Light Source High Accuracy EUV Reflectometry and Scattering at the Advanced Light Source Eric Gullikson Lawrence Berkeley National Laboratory 1 Reflectometry and Scattering Beamline (ALS 6.3.2) Commissioned Fall 1994

More information

If anything confuses you or is not clear, raise your hand and ask!

If anything confuses you or is not clear, raise your hand and ask! CHM 1045 Dr. Light s Section December 10, 2002 FINAL EXAM Name (please print) Recitation Section Meeting Time This exam consists of six pages. Make sure you have one of each. Print your name at the top

More information

INTRODUCTION TO MEASUREMENTS

INTRODUCTION TO MEASUREMENTS INTRODUCTION TO MEASUREMENTS Introduction: In the first three experiments you will learn how to use equipment that to measure length, mass, and volume. You will apply the rules about significant figures

More information

7. Relax and do well.

7. Relax and do well. CHEM 1215 Exam II John II. Gelder October 7, 1998 Name TA's Name Lab Section INSTRUCTIONS: 1. This examination consists of a total of 5 different pages. The last page includes a periodic table and a solubility

More information

The Periodic Table of Elements

The Periodic Table of Elements The Periodic Table of Elements 8 Uuo Uus Uuh (9) Uup (88) Uuq (89) Uut (8) Uub (8) Rg () 0 Ds (9) 09 Mt (8) 08 Hs (9) 0 h () 0 Sg () 0 Db () 0 Rf () 0 Lr () 88 Ra () 8 Fr () 8 Rn () 8 At (0) 8 Po (09)

More information

Devanagari Ä Ç Bengali à ä Gujarati ê í Oriya ò ö ÿ Ÿ.

Devanagari Ä Ç  Bengali à ä  Gujarati ê í  Oriya ò ö  ÿ Ÿ. ISO/IEC JTC1/SC2/WG2 N3272 L2/07-196 2007-05-25 Universal Multiple-Octet Coded Character Set International Organization for Standardization Organisation internationale de normalisation Международная организация

More information

Circle ONLY the LETTER of your answer.

Circle ONLY the LETTER of your answer. hemistry 1304 Name (please print) Exam 5 (105 points) May 3, 2017 n my honor, I have neither given nor received unauthorized aid on this exam. Signed Date ircle NLY the LETTER of your answer. 1. (3 points)

More information

Using the Periodic Table

Using the Periodic Table MATH SKILLS TRANSPARENCY WORKSHEET Using the Periodic Table 6 Use with Chapter 6, Section 6.2 1. Identify the number of valence electrons in each of the following elements. a. Ne e. O b. K f. Cl c. B g.

More information

Cataraqui Source Protection Area Stream Gauge Locations

Cataraqui Source Protection Area Stream Gauge Locations Cqu u P m Gu s Ts Ez K Ts u s sp E s ms P Ps s m m C Y u u I s Ts x C C u R 4 N p Ds Qu H Em us ms p G Cqu C, s Ks F I s s Gqu u Gqu s N D U ( I T Gqu C s C, 5 Rs p, Rs 15, 7 N m s m Gus - Ps P f P 1,

More information

Chemistry 51 Exam #3. Name KEY November 20, 2001

Chemistry 51 Exam #3. Name KEY November 20, 2001 Chemistry 51 Exam #3 Name KEY November 20, 2001 This exam has nine (9) questions. Please check before beginning to make sure no questions are missing. All scratch work must be done on the attached blank

More information

Pradarśini (1905) VOLUME III. CAKRAS 7 to 12

Pradarśini (1905) VOLUME III. CAKRAS 7 to 12 Saṅgīta Saṁpradāya Pradarśini Brahmaśrī SUBBARĀMA DĪKṢITA (1905) VOLUME III CAKRAS 7 to 12 ENGLISH EDITION JANUARY 2008 SAṄGĪTA SAṀPRADĀYA PRADARŚINI SUBBARĀMA DĪKṢITA ENGLISH (WEB) VERSION Volume III:

More information

Use precise language and domain-specific vocabulary to inform about or explain the topic. CCSS.ELA-LITERACY.WHST D

Use precise language and domain-specific vocabulary to inform about or explain the topic. CCSS.ELA-LITERACY.WHST D Lesson seven What is a chemical reaction? Science Constructing Explanations, Engaging in Argument and Obtaining, Evaluating, and Communicating Information ENGLISH LANGUAGE ARTS Reading Informational Text,

More information

PART 1 Introduction to Theory of Solids

PART 1 Introduction to Theory of Solids Elsevier UK Job code: MIOC Ch01-I044647 9-3-2007 3:03p.m. Page:1 Trim:165 240MM TS: Integra, India PART 1 Introduction to Theory of Solids Elsevier UK Job code: MIOC Ch01-I044647 9-3-2007 3:03p.m. Page:2

More information